Joshua Graham Reads | The Republic By Plato

42.62k views117766 WordsCopy TextShare
wattehell
https://www.youtube.com/playlist?list=PLhAx8QYOZvYVfsQgtWccTuBBOGMpaNJPb Playlist where each Book is...
Video Transcript:
the Republic by Plato persons of the dialogue Socrates glockon adamantus Paul Marcus cephalus thrissimicus TL itathon and others who are mute Auditors the scene is laid in the house of cephalus at the pyrius and the whole dialogue is narrated by Socrates the day after it actually took place to timius herocrates critius and a nameless person who are introduced in the thymeas book one I went down yesterday to the pirates with glaucom the son of Ariston that I might offer up my prayers to the goddess Bendis the thracian Artemis and also because I wanted to see
in what Manner they would celebrate the festival which was a new thing I was delighted with the procession of the inhabitants but that of the Thracians was equally if not more beautiful when we had finished our prayers and viewed the spectacle we turned in the direction of the city and at that instant Paula Marcus the son of cephalus chance to catch sight of us from a distance as we were starting on our way home and told his servant to run and bid his weight for him the servant took hold of me by the cloak behind
and said Paula Marcus desires you to wait I turned round and asked him where his master was there he is at the youth coming after you if you will only wait certainly we will said glaucom and in a few minutes Paula Marcus appeared and with him adamantis glocken's brother nissaratus the son of nissius and several others who had been at the procession Paula Marcus said to me I perceive Socrates that you and your companion are already on your way to the city you are not far wrong I said but do you see he rejoined how
many we are of course and are you stronger than all these for if not you will have to remain where you are May there not be the alternative I said that we may persuade you to let us go but can you persuade us if we refuse to listen to you he said certainly not replied glaucon then we are not going to listen of that you may be assured and he mantis added has no one told you of the torch race on Horseback in honor of the Goddess which will take place in the evening with horses
I replied that is a novelty will Horsemen carry torches and pass them one to another during the race yes said polar Marcus and not only so but a festival will be celebrated at night which you certainly ought to see let us rise soon after supper and see this Festival there will be a gathering of young men and we will have a good talk stay then and do not be perverse glocken said I suppose since you insist that we must very good I replied accordingly we went with Paula Marcus to his house and there we found
his brothers Licious and euthademus and with them thrasymachus the calcedonian charmantides the pioneon and clatophon the son of aristonimus there too was kefilis the father of polar Marcus whom I had not seen for a long time and I thought him very much aged he was Seated on a cushioned chair and had a Garland on his head for he had been sacrificing in the court and there were some other chairs in the room arranged in a semicircle upon which we sat down by him he saluted me eagerly and then he said you don't come to see
me Socrates as often as you ought if I were still able to go and see you I would not ask you to come to me but at my age I can hardly get to the city and therefore you should come often into the pirates for let me tell you that the more the pleasures of the body fade away the greater to me is the pleasure and charm of conversation do not then deny my request but make our house your Resort and keep company with these young men we are old friends and you will be quite
at home with us I replied there is nothing which for my part I like better kephalus than conversing with aged men for I regard them as Travelers who have gone a journey which I too may have to go and of whom I ought to inquire whether the way is smooth and easy or rugged and difficult and this is a question which I should like to ask of you who have arrived at that time which The Poets call the threshold of old age is life harder towards the end or what report do you give of it
I will tell you Socrates he said what my own feeling is men of my age flock together we are birds of a feather as the old proverb says and at our meetings the tale of my acquaintance commonly is I cannot eat I cannot drink the pleasures of Youth and love are fled away there was a good time once but now that is gone and life is no longer life some complain of the slights which are put upon them by relations and they will tell you sadly of how many evils their old age is the cause
but to me Socrates these complainers seem to blame that which is not really in fault for if old age were the cause I too being old and every other old man would have felt as they do but this is not my own experience nor that of others whom I have known how well I remember the Aged poet Sophocles when in answer to the question how does love suit with age Sophocles are you still the man you were peace he replied most gladly have I escaped the thing of which you speak I feel as if I
had escaped from a mad and Furious master his words have often occurred to my mind since and they seem as good to me now as at the time when he uttered them for certainly old age has a great sense of calm and freedom when the passions relax their hold then as sophocally says we are freed from the grasp not of one mad Master only but of many the truth is Socrates that these regrets and also the complaints about relations are to be attributed to the same cause which is not old age but men's characters and
tempers for he who is of a calm and happy nature will hardly feel the pressure of age but to him who is of an opposite disposition Youth and age are equally a burden I listened in admiration and wanting to draw him out that he might go on yes cephalus I said but I rather suspect that people in general are not convinced by you when you speak thus they think that old age sits lightly upon you not because of your happy disposition but because you are rich and wealth is well known to be a great comforter
you are right he replied they are not convinced and there is something in what they say not however so much as they imagine I might answer them as the mysticles answered the serithian who was abusing him and saying that he was famous not for his own merits but because he was an Athenian if you had been a native of my country or I of yours neither of us would have been famous and to those who are not rich and are impatient of old age the same reply may be made for to the good poor man
old age cannot be a light burden nor can a bad rich man ever have peace with himself may I ask cephalus whether your fortune was for the most part inherited or acquired by you acquired Socrates do you want to know how much I acquired in the art of making money I have been midway between my father and grandfather for my grandfather whose name I bear doubled and trebled the value of his patrimony that which he inherited being much what I possess now but my father lycenius reduced the property below what it is at present and
I shall be satisfied if I leave to these my sons not less but a little more than I received that was why I asked you the question I replied because I see that you are indifferent about money which is a characteristic rather of those who have inherited their fortunes than of those who have acquired them the makers of Fortunes have a second love of money as a creation of their own resembling the affection of authors for their own poems or of parents for their children besides that natural love of it for the sake of use
and profit which is common to them and all men and hence they are very bad company for they can talk about nothing but the Praises of wealth that is true he said yes that is very true but may I ask another question what do you consider to be the greatest blessing which you have reaped from your wealth one he said of which I could not expect easily to convince others for let me tell you Socrates that when a man thinks himself to be near death fears and cares enter into his mind which he never had
before the tales of a world below and the punishment which is exacted there of deeds done here were once a laughing matter to him but now he is tormented with the thought that they may be true either from the weakness of age or because he is now drawing nearer to that other place he has a clearer view of these things suspicions and alarms crowd thickly upon him and he begins to reflect and consider what wrongs he has done to others and when he finds that the sum of his transgressions is great he will many a
time like a child start up in his sleep for fear and he is filled with dark forebodings but to him who is conscious of no sin sweet hope as pindar charmingly says is the kind nurse of his age hope he says cherishes the soul of him who lives in Justice and Holiness and is the nurse of his age and the companion of his journey hope which is mightiest to sway the Restless soul of man how admirable are his words and the great blessing of riches I do not say to every man but to a good
man is that he has had no occasion to deceive or to defraud others either intentionally or unintentionally and when he departs to the world below he is not in any apprehension about offerings due to the gods or deaths which he owes to men now to this peace of mind the possession of wealth greatly contributes and therefore I say that setting one thing against another of the many advantages which wealth has to give to a man of sense this is in my opinion the greatest well said cephalus I replied but as concerning Justice what is it
to speak the truth and to pay your debts no more than this and even to this are there not exceptions suppose that a friend when in his right mind has deposited arms with me and he asks for them when he is not in his right mind ought I to give them back to him no one would say that I ought or that I should be right in doing so any more than they would say that I ought always to speak the truth to one who is in his condition you are quite right he replied but
then I said speaking the truth and paying your debts is not a correct definition of justice quite correct Socrates if simonides is to be believed said Paula Marcus interposing I fear said cephalus that I must go now for I have to look after the sacrifices and I hand over the argument to Paula Marcus and the company is not polymarcus your Heir I said to be sure he answered and went away laughing to the sacrifices tell me then oh thou heir of the argument what did simonides say and according to you truly say about Justice he
said that the repayment of a debt is just and in saying so he appears to me to be right I should be sorry to doubt the word of such a wise and inspired man but his meaning though probably clear to you is the reverse of clear to me for he certainly does not mean as we were just now saying that I ought to return a deposit of arms or of anything else to one who asks for it when he is not in his right senses and yet a deposit cannot be denied to be a debt
true than when the person who asks me is not in his right mind I am by no means to make the return certainly not when simonides said that the repayment of a debt was Justice he did not mean to include that case certainly not for he thinks that a friend ought always to do good to a friend and never evil you mean that the return of a deposit of gold which is to the injury of the receiver if the two parties are friends is not the repayment of a debt that is what you would imagine
him to say yes and our enemies also to receive what we owe to them to be sure he said they are to receive what we owe them and an enemy as I take it owes to an enemy that which is due or proper to him that is to say evil simonides then after the manner of poets would seem to have spoken Darkly of the nature of justice for he really meant to say that Justice is the giving to each man what is proper to him and this he termed a debt that must have been his
meaning he said by Heaven I replied and if we asked him what do or proper thing is given by medicine and to whom what answer do you think that he would make to us he would surely reply that medicine gives drugs and meat and drink to human bodies and what do or proper thing is given by cookery and to what seasoning to food and what is that which Justice gives and to whom if Socrates we are to be guided At All by the analogy of the preceding instances then Justice is the art which gives good
to friends and evil to enemies that is his meaning then I think so and who is best able to do good to his friends and evil to his enemies in time of sickness the physician or when they are on a voyage amid the Perils of the sea the pilot and in what sort of actions or with a view to what result is the just man most able to do harm to his enemy and good to his friend in going to war against the one and in making alliances with the other but when a man is
well my dear Paula Marcus there is no need of a physician no and he who is not on a voyage has no need of a pilot no then in time of Peace Justice will be of no use I am very far from thinking so you think that Justice may be of use and peace as well as in war yes like husbandry for the acquisition of corn yes or like shoemaking for the acquisition of shoes that is what you mean yes and what similar use or power of acquisition has Justice in time of Peace in contracts
Socrates Justice is of use and by contracts you mean Partnerships exactly but is the just man or the skillful player a more useful and better partner at a game of drafts the skillful player and in the laying of bricks and stones is the just man a more useful or better partner than the Builder quite the reverse than in what sort of partnership is the just man a better partner than the harp player as in playing the harp the harp player is certainly a better partner than the just man in a money partnership yes Paula Marcus
but surely not in the use of money for you do not want a just man to be your counselor in the purchase or sale of a horse a man who is knowing about horses would be better for that would he not certainly and when you want to buy a ship the shipwright or the pilot would be better true then what is that joint use of silver or gold in which the just man is to be preferred when you want a deposit to be kept safely you mean when money is not wanted but allowed to lie
precisely that is to say justice is useful when money is useless that is the inference and when you want to keep a pruning hook safe then Justice is useful to the individual and to the state but when you want to use it then the art of the vine dresser clearly and when you want to keep a shield or a liar and not to use them you would say that Justice is useful but when you want to use them then the art of the soldier or of the musician certainly and so of all other things Justice
is useful when they are useless and useless when they are useful that is the inference then Justice is not good for much but let us consider this further point is not he who can best strike a blow in a boxing match or in any kind of fighting best able to ward off a blow certainly and he who is most skillful in preventing or escaping from a disease is best able to create one true and he's the best guard of a camp who is best able to steal a March upon the enemy certainly then he who
is a good keeper of anything is also a good thief that I suppose is to be inferred than if the just man is good at keeping money he is good at stealing it that is implied in the argument then after all the just man has turned out to be a thief and this is a lesson which I suspect you must have learned out of Homer for he speaking of Auto like us the maternal grandfather of Odysseus who is a favorite of his affirms that he was excellent above all men in theft and perjury and so
you and Homer and simonides are agreed that Justice is an art of theft to be practiced however for the good of friends and for the harm of enemies that was what you were saying no certainly not that though I do not now know what I did say but I still stand by the latter words well there is another question by friends and enemies do we mean those who are so really or only in seeming surely he said a man may be expected to love those whom he thinks good and to hate those whom he thinks
evil yes but do not persons often err about Good and Evil many who are not good seem to be so and conversely that is true then to them the good will be enemies and the evil will be their friends true and in that case they will be right in doing good to the evil and evil to the good clearly but the good are just and would not do an injustice true then according to your argument it is just to injure those who do no wrong nay Socrates the doctrine is immoral then I suppose that we
ought to do good to the just and harm to the unjust I like that better but see the consequence many a man who is ignorant of Human Nature has friends who are bad friends and in that case he ought to do harm to them and he has good enemies whom he ought to benefit but if so we shall be saying the very opposite of that which we affirm to be the meaning of simonides very true he said and I think that we had better correct an error into which we seem to have fallen in the
use of the words friend and enemy what was the error Paula Marcus I asked we assume that he is a friend who seems to be or who is thought good and how is the error to be corrected we should rather say that he is a friend who is as well as seems good and that he who seems only and is not good only seems to be and is not a friend and of an enemy the same may be said you would argue that the good are our friends and the bad our enemies yes and instead
of saying simply as we did it first that it is just to do good to our friends and harm to our enemies we should further say it is just to do good to our friends when they are good and harm to our enemies when they are evil yes that appears to me to be the truth but ought to just to injure anyone at all undoubtedly he ought to injure those who are both Wicked in his enemies when horses are injured are they improved or deteriorated the latter deteriorated that is to say in the good qualities
of horses not of dogs yes of horses and dogs are deteriorated in the good qualities of dogs and not of horses of course and will not men who are injured be deteriorated in that which is the proper virtue of man certainly and that human virtue is Justice to be sure then men who are injured are of necessity made unjust that is the result but can the musician by his art make men musical certainly not or the horsemen by his art make them bad Horsemen impossible and can the just by Justice make men unjust or speaking
generally can the Good by virtue make them bad assuredly not any more than heat can produce cold it cannot or drought moisture clearly not nor can the good harm anyone impossible and the just is the good certainly than to injure a friend or anyone else is not the act of a just man but of the opposite who is the unjust I think that what you say is quite true Socrates then if a man says that Justice consists in the repayment of debts and that good is the debt which a just man owes to his friends
and evil the debt which he owes to his enemies to say this is not wise for it is not true if as has been clearly shown the injuring of another can be in no case just I agree with you said Paula Marcus then you and I are prepared to take up arms against anyone who attributes such as saying to simonides or bias or piticus or any other wise man or Seer I am quite ready to do battle at your side he said shall I tell you who's I believe the saying to be whose I believe
that periander or predicus or Xerxes or isminius the theban or some other rich and mighty man who had a great opinion of his own power was the first to say that Justice is doing good to your friends and harm to your enemies most true he said yes I said but if this definition of justice also breaks down what other can be offered several times in the course of the discussion thrasymicus had made an attempt to get the argument into his own hands and had been put down by the rest of the company who wanted to
hear the end but when Paula Marcus and I had done speaking and there was a pause he could no longer hold his peace and Gathering himself up he came at us like a wild beast seeking to devour us we were quite panic-stricken at the sight of him he roared out to the whole company what Folly Socrates has taken possession of you all and why silly billies do you knock under to one another I say that if you want really to know what Justice is you should not only ask but answer and you should not seek
honor to yourself from the refutation of an opponent but have your own answer for there is many a one who can ask and cannot answer and now I will not have you say that Justice's Duty or advantage of profit or gain or interest for this sort of nonsense will not do for me I must have clearness and accuracy I was panic-stricken at his words and could not look at him without trembling indeed I believe that if I had not fixed my eye upon him I should have been struck dumb but when I saw his Fury
Rising I looked at him first and was therefore able to reply to him thracimicus I said with a quiver don't be hard Upon Us Paula Marcus and I may have been guilty of a little mistake in the argument but I can assure you that the error was not intentional if we were seeking for a piece of gold you would not imagine that we were knocking under to one another and so losing our chance of finding it and why when we are seeking for justice a thing more precious than many pieces of gold do you say
that we are weakly yielding to one another and not doing our utmost to get at the truth nay my good friend we are most willing and anxious to do so but the fact is that we cannot and if so you people who know all things should pity us and not be angry with us how characteristic of Socrates he replied with a bitter laugh that's your ironical Style did I not foresee have I not already told you that whatever he was asked he would refuse to answer and try irony or any other Shuffle in order that
he might avoid answering you are a philosopher thracimicus I replied and well know that if you ask a person what numbers make up 12 taking care to prohibit him whom you ask from answering twice six or three times four or six times two or four times three for this sort of nonsense will not do for me then obviously if that is your way of putting the question no one can answer you but suppose that he were to retort thracimicus what do you mean if one of these numbers which you interdict be the true answer to
the question am I falsely to say some other number which is not the right one is that your meaning how would you answer him just as if the two cases were at all alike he said why should they not be I replied and even if they are not but only appear to be so to the person who is asked ought he not to say what he thinks whether you and I forbid him or not I presume then that you are going to make one of the interdicted answers I dare say that I may not withstanding
the danger if upon reflection I approve of any of them but what if I give you an answer about Justice other and better he said than any of these what do you deserve to have done to you done to me as becomes the ignorant I must learn from the wise that is what I deserve to have done to me what a no payment a pleasant notion I will pay when I have the money I replied but you have Socrates said glocken and you throw simicus need be under no anxiety about money for we will all
make a contribution for Socrates yes he replied and then Socrates will do as he always does refuse to answer himself but take and pull to Pieces the answer of someone else why my good friend I said how can anyone answer who knows and says that he knows just nothing and who even if he has some faint Notions of his own is told by a man of authority not to utter them the natural thing is that the speaker should be someone like yourself who professes to know and can tell what he knows will you then kindly
answer for the edification of the company and of myself glaucon and the rest of the company joined in my request anthracimicus as anyone might see was in reality eager to speak for he thought that he had an excellent answer and would distinguish himself but at first he affected to insist on my answering at length he consented to begin behold he said the wisdom of Socrates he refuses to teach himself and goes about learning of others to whom he never even says thank you that I learn of others I replied is quite true but that I
am ungrateful I wholly deny money I have none and therefore I pay in Praise which is all I have and how ready I am to praise anyone who appears to me to speak well you will very soon find out when you answer for I expect that you will answer well listen then He said I Proclaim that Justice is nothing else than the interest of the stronger and now why do you not praise me but of course you won't let me first understand you I replied justice as you say is the interest of the stronger what
thracimicus is the meaning of this you cannot mean to say that because poly Damas the pancreatiest is stronger than we are and finds the eating of beef conducive to his bodily strength that to eat beef is therefore equally for our good who are weaker than he is and right and just for us that's abominable of you Socrates you take the words in the sense which is most damaging to the argument not at all my good sir I said I am trying to understand them and I wish that you would be a little clearer well he
said have you never heard that forms of government differ there are tyrannies and there are democracies and there are aristocracies yes I know and the government is the ruling power in each state certainly and the different forms of government make laws democratical aristocratical tyrannical with a view to their several interests and these laws which are made by them for their own interests are the Justice which they deliver to their subjects and him who transgresses them they punish as a breaker of the law law and unjust and that is what I mean when I say that
in all states there is the same principle of Justice which is the interest of the government and as the government must be supposed to have power the only reasonable conclusion is that everywhere there is one principle of Justice which is the interest of the stronger now I understand you I said and whether you are right or not I will try to discover but let me remark that in defining Justice you have yourself used the word interest which you forbade me to use it is true however that in your definition the words of the stronger are
added a small addition you must allow he said great or small never mind about that we must first inquire whether what you are saying is the truth now we are both agreed that Justice is interest of some sort but you go on to say of the stronger about this Edition I am not so sure and must therefore consider further proceed I will and first tell me do you admit that it is just for subjects to obey their rulers I do but are the rulers of States absolutely infallible or are they sometimes liable to error to
be sure he replied they are liable to error then in making their laws they may sometimes make them rightly and sometimes not true when they make them rightly they make them agreeably to their interest when they are mistaken contrary to their interest you admit that yes and the laws which they make must be obeyed by their subjects and that is what you call Justice doubtless then Justice according to your argument is not only obedience to the interest of the stronger but the reverse what is that you are saying he asked I'm only repeating what you
are saying I believe but let us consider have we not admitted that the rulers may be mistaken about their own interest in what they command and also that to obey them is justice has not that been admitted yes then you must also have acknowledged Justice not to be for the interest of the stronger when the rulers unintentionally command things to be done which are to their own injury for if as you say justice is The Obedience which the subject renders to their commands in that case o wisest of men is there any escape from the
conclusion that the weaker are commanded to do not what is for the interest but what is for the injury of the stronger nothing can be clearer Socrates said Paula Marcus yes said clitophon interposing if you are allowed to be his witness but there is no need of any witness said Paula Marcus for thracimicus himself acknowledges that rulers May sometimes command what is not for their own interest and that for subjects to obey them is justice yes Paula Marcus throws himachus said that for subjects to do what was commanded by their rulers is just yes clytophon
but he also said that Justice is the interest of the stronger and while admitting both these propositions he further acknowledged that the stronger May command the weaker who are his subjects to do what is not for his own interest whence follows that Justice is the injury quite as much as the interest of the stronger but said clytophon he meant by the interest of the stronger what the stronger thought to be his interest this was what the weaker had to do and this was affirmed by him to be Justice those were not his words rejoined Paula
Marcus never mind I replied if he now says that they are let us accept his statement tell me thracimicus I said did you mean by Justice what the stronger thought to be his interest whether really so or not certainly not he said do you suppose that I call him who is mistaken the stronger at the time when he is mistaken yes I said my impression was that you did so when you admitted that the ruler was not infallible but might be sometimes mistaken you argue like an Informer Socrates do you mean for example that he
who is mistaken about the sick is a physician in that he is mistaken or that he who airs in arithmetic or grammar is an arithmetician or grammarian at the time when he is making the mistake in respect of the mistake true we say that the physician or arithmetician or grammarian has made a mistake but this is only a way of speaking for the fact is that neither the grammarian or any other person of skill ever makes a mistake insofar as he is what his name implies they none of them air unless their skill fails them
and then they cease to be skilled artists no artist or Sage or ruler ERS at the time when he is what his name implies though he is commonly said to Heir and I adopted the common mode of speaking but to be perfectly accurate since you are such a lover of accuracy we should say that the ruler insofar as he is a ruler is unerring and being unerring always commands that which is for his own interest and the subject is required to execute his commands and therefore as I said it first and now repeat Justice is
the interest of the stronger indeed through simicus and do I really appear to you to argue like an Informer certainly he replied and do you suppose that I ask these questions with any design of injuring you in the argument nay he replied suppose is not the word I know it but you will be found out and by sheer force of argument you will never Prevail I shall not make the attempt my dear man but to avoid any misunderstanding occurring between us in future let me ask in what sense do you speak of a ruler or
stronger whose interest as you were saying he being the superior it is just that the inferior should execute is he a ruler in the popular or in the strict sense of the term in the strictest of all senses he said and now cheat and play the Informer if you can I ask No Quarter at your hands but you never will be able never and do you imagine I said that I am such a Madman as to try and cheat through simicus I might as well shave a lion why he said you made the attempt a
minute ago and you failed enough I said of these civilities it will be better that I should ask you a question is the physician taken in that strict sense of which you are speaking A Healer of the sick or a maker of money and remember that I am now speaking of the true physician A Healer of the sick he replied and the pilot that is to say the true pilot is he a captain of sailors or a mere sailor a captain of sailors the circumstance that he sails in the ship is not to be taken
into account neither is he to be called a sailor the name pilot by which he is distinguished has nothing to do with sailing but is significant of his skill and of his authority over the sailors very true he said now I said every art has an interest certainly for which the art has to consider and provide yes that is the aim of Art and the interest of any art is the Perfection of it this and nothing else what do you mean I mean what I may illustrate negatively by the example of the body suppose you
were to ask me whether the body is self-sufficing or has wants I should reply certainly the body has wants for the body may be ill and required to be cured and has therefore interest to which the art of medicine ministers and this is the origin and intention of medicine as you will acknowledge am I not right quite right he replied but is the art of medicine or any other art faulty or deficient in any quality in the same way that the eye may be deficient in sight or the ear fail of hearing and there 4
requires another art to provide for the interests of seeing and hearing has art in itself I say any similar liability to fault or defect and does every art require another supplementary art to provide for its interests and that another and another Without End or have the odds to look only after their own interests or have they no need either of themselves or of another having no faults or defects they have no need to correct them either by the exercise of their own art or of any other they have only to consider the interest of their
subject matter for every art remains pure and faultless while remaining true that is to say while perfect and unimpaired take the words in your precise sense and tell me whether I am not right yes clearly then medicine does not consider the interest of medicine but the interest of the body true he said nor does the art of horsemanship consider the interests of the art of horsemanship but the interests of the horse neither do any other Arts care for themselves for they have no needs they care only for that which is the subject of their art
true he said but surely thrissimichus the Arts are the superiors and rulers of their own subjects to this he ascended with a good deal of reluctance then I said no science or art considers or enjoins the interest of the stronger or Superior but only the interest of the subject and weaker he made an attempt to contest this proposition also but finally acquiesced then I continued no physician insofar as he is a physician considers his own good in what he prescribes but the good of his patient for the true physician is also a ruler having the
human body as a subject and is not a Mere Money Maker that has been admitted yes and the pilot likewise in the strict sense of the term is a ruler of sailors and not a mere sailor that has been admitted and such a pilot and ruler will provide and prescribe for the interest of the sailor who is under him and not for his own or the ruler's interest he gave a reluctant yes then I said thracimicus there is no one in any rule who insofar as he is a ruler considers or enjoins what is for
his own interest but always what is for the interest of his subject or suitable to his art to that he looks and that alone he considers in everything which he says and does when we had got to this point in the argument and everyone saw that the definition of justice had been completely upset thracimicus instead of replying to me said tell me Socrates have you got a nurse why do you ask such a question I said when you ought rather to be answering because she leaves you to snivel and never wipes your nose she has
not even taught you to know the Shepherd from the Sheep what makes you say that I replied because you fancy that the shepherd or nethered fattens or tends the sheep or oxen with a view to their own good and not to the good of himself or his master and you further imagine that the rulers of States if they are true rulers never think of their subjects as sheep and that they are not studying their own Advantage day and night oh no and so entirely astray are you in your ideas about the just and unjust as
not even to know that Justice and the just are in reality another's good that is to say the interest of the ruler and stronger and the loss of the subject and servant and Injustice the opposite for the unjust is Lord over the truly simple and just he is the stronger and his subjects do what is for his interest and minister to his happiness which is very far from being their own consider further most foolish Socrates that the just is always a loser in comparison with the unjust first of all in private contracts wherever the unjust
is the partner of the just you will find that when the partnership is dissolved the unjust man has always more in the just less secondly in their dealings with the state when there is an income tax the just man will pay more and the unjust Less on the same amount of income and when there is anything to be received the one gains nothing and the other much observe also what happens when they take an office there is the just man neglecting his Affairs and perhaps suffering other losses and getting nothing out of the public because
he is just moreover he is hated by his friends and acquaintance for refusing to serve them in unlawful ways but all this is reversed in the case of the unjust man I am speaking as before of Injustice on a large scale in which the advantage of the unjust is most apparent and my meaning will be most clearly seen if we turn to that highest form of Injustice in which the criminal is the happiest of men and the sufferers are those who refuse to do Injustice are the most miserable that is to say tyranny which by
fraud and force takes away the property of others not little by little but wholesale comprehending in one things sacred as well as profane private and public for which acts of wrong if he were detected perpetrating any one of them singly he would be punished and incur great disgrace they who do such wrong in particular cases are called robbers of temples and man Stealers and burglars and swindlers and thieves but when a man besides taking away the money of the citizens has made slaves of them then instead of these names of reproach he is termed happy
and blessed not only by the citizens but by all who here of his having achieved the consummation of Injustice for Mankind's censure Injustice fearing that they may be the victims of it and not because they shrink from committing it and thus as I have shown Socrates Injustice when on a sufficient scale has more strength and freedom and Mastery than Justice and as I said at first Justice is the interest of the stronger whereas Injustice is a man's own prophet and interest when he had thus spoken having like a bathman deluged our ears with his words
had a mind to go away but the company would not let him they insisted that he should remain and defend his position and I myself added my own humble request that he would not leave us imicus I said to him Excellent Man how suggestive are your remarks and are you going to run away before you have fairly taught or learned whether they are true or not is the attempt to determine the way of man's life so small a matter in your eyes to determine how life may be passed by each one of us to the
greatest advantage and do I differ from you he said as to the importance of the inquiry you appear rather I replied to have no care or thought about us through simicus whether we live better or worse from not knowing what you say you know is to you a matter of indifference pretty friend do not keep your knowledge to yourself we are a large party and any benefit which you confer upon us will be amply rewarded for my own part I openly declare that I am not convinced and that I do not believe Injustice to be
more gainful than Justice even if uncontrolled and allowed to have free play for granting that there may be an unjust man who is able to commit Injustice either by fraud or Force still this does not convince me of the superior advantage of Injustice and there may be others who are in the same predicament with myself perhaps we may be wrong if so you in your wisdom should convince us that we are mistaken in preferring Justice to Injustice and how am I to convince you he said if you are not already convinced by what I have
just said what more can I do for you would you have me put the proof bodily into your souls heaven forbid I said I would only ask you to be consistent or if you change change openly and let there be no deception for I must remark through simicus if you will recall what was previously said that although you began by defining the true physician in an exact sense you did not observe a like exactness when speaking of the shepherd you thought that the shepherd as a Shepherd tends the Sheep not with a view to their
own good but like a mere Diner or banqueta with a view to the pleasures of the table or again as a traitor for sale in the market and not as a Shepherd yet surely the art of the shepherd is concerned only with the good of his subjects he has only to provide the best for them since the Perfection of the art is already insured whenever all the requirements of it are satisfied and that was what I was saying just now about the ruler I conceived that the art of the ruler considered as ruler whether in
a state or in private life could only regard the good of his flock or subjects whereas you seem to think that the rulers and states that is to say the true rulers like being in Authority think nay I am sure of it then why in the case of lesser offices do men never take them willingly without payment unless under the idea that they govern for the advantage not of themselves but of others let me ask you a question are not the several arts different by reason of their each having a separate function and my dear
illustrious friend do say what you think that we may make a little progress yes that is the difference he replied and each art gives us a particular good and not merely a general one medicine for example gives us Health navigation safety at Sea and so on yes he said and the Art of payment has the special function of giving pay but we do not confuse this with other Arts any more than the art of the pilot is to be confused with the art of medicine because the health of the pilot may be improved by a
sea voyage you would not be inclined to say would you that navigation is the art of medicine at least if we are to adopt your exact use of language certainly not or because a man is in good health when he receives pay you would not say that the art of payment is medicine I should not nor would you say that medicine is the art of receiving pay because a man takes fees when he is engaged in healing certainly not and we have admitted I said that the good of each art is specially confined to the
art yes then if there be any good which all artists have in common that is to be attributed to something of which they all have the common use true he replied and when the artist is benefited by receiving pay the advantages gained by an additional use of the art of pay which is not the art professed by him he gave a reluctant Ascent to this then the pay is not derived by the several artists from their respective Arts but the truth is that while the art of medicine gives health and the Art of the Builder
builds a house another art attends them which is the art of pay the various Arts may be doing their own business and benefiting that over which they preside but would the artist receive any benefit from his art unless he were paid as well I suppose not but does he therefore confer no benefit when he works for nothing certainly he confers a benefit then now through simicus there is no longer any doubt that neither Arts nor governments provide for their own interests but as we were before saying they rule and provide for the interests of their
subjects who are the weaker and not the stronger to their good they attend and not to the good of the superior and this is the reason my dear thracimicus why as I was just now saying no one is willing to govern because no one likes to take in hand the Reformation of evils which are not his concern without remuneration for in the execution of his work and in giving his orders to another the true artist does not regard his own interest but always that of his subjects and therefore in order that rulers may be willing
to rule they must be paid in one of three modes of payment money or honor or a penalty for refusing what do you mean Socrates said glaucon the first two modes of payment are intelligible enough but what the penalty is I do not understand or how a penalty can be a payment you mean that you do not understand the nature of this payment which to the best men is the great inducement to rule of course you know that ambition and avarice are held to be as indeed they are a disgrace very true and for this
reason I said money and honor have no attraction for them good men do not wish to be openly demanding payment for governing and so to get the name of hirelings nor by secretly helping themselves out of the public revenues to get the name of Thieves and not being ambitious they do not care about honor wherefore necessity must be laid upon them and they must be induced to serve from the fear of punishment and this as I imagine is the reason why the forwardness to take office instead of waiting to be compelled has been deemed dishonorable
now the worst part of the punishment is that he who refuses to rule is liable to be ruled by one who is worse than himself and the fear of this as I conceive induces the good to take office not because they would but because they cannot help not under the idea that they're going to have any benefit or enjoyment themselves but as a necessity and because they are not able to commit the task of ruling to anyone who is better than themselves or indeed as good for there is reason to think that if a city
were composed entirely of Good Men then to avoid office would be as much an object of contention as to obtain offices at present then we should have plain proof that the true ruler is not meant by nature to regard his own interest but that of his subjects and everyone who knew this would choose rather to receive a benefit from another than to have the trouble of conferring one so far am I from agreeing with thracimicus that Justice is the interest of the stronger this latter question need not be further discussed at present but when thrasymica
says that the life of the unjust is more advantageous than that of the just his new statement appears to me to be of a far more serious character which of us has spoken truly and which sort of Life glocken do you prefer I for my part deem the life of the just to be the more advantageous he answered did you hear all the advantages of the unjust which thrasymchus was rehearsing yes I heard him he replied but he has not convinced me then shall we try to find some way of convincing him if we can
that he is saying what is not true most certainly he replied if I said he makes a set speech and we make another recounting all the advantages of being just and he answers and we rejoin there must be a numbering and measuring of the goods which are claimed on either side and in the end we shall want judges to decide but if we proceed in our inquiry as we lately did by making admissions to one another other we shall unite the offices of Judge and advocate in our own persons very good he said and which
method do I understand you to prefer I said that which you propose well then thrissimicus I said suppose you begin at the beginning and answer me you say that perfect Injustice is more gainful than perfect Justice yes that is what I say and I have given you my reasons and what is your view about them would you call one of them virtue and the other Vice certainly I suppose that you would call Justice virtue and Injustice Vice what a Charming notion so likely to seeing that I affirm Injustice to be profitable and Justice not what
else then would you say the opposite he replied and would you call Justice Vice no I would rather say Sublime Simplicity then would you call Injustice malignity no I would rather say discretion and do the unjust appear to you to be wise and good yes he said at any rate those of them who are able to be perfectly unjust and who have the power of subduing states and Nations but perhaps you imagine me to be talking of cut purses even this profession if undetected has advantages though they are not to be compared with those of
which I was just now speaking I do not think that I misapprehend your meaning through simicus I replied but still I cannot hear without amazement that you class Injustice with wisdom and virtue and Justice with the opposite certainly I do so class them now I said you are on more substantial and almost unanswerable ground for if the Injustice which you were maintaining to be profitable had been admitted by you as by others to be Vice and deformity an answer might have been given to you on received principles but now I perceive that you will call
Injustice honorable and strong and to the unjust you will attribute all the qualities which were attributed by us before to the just seeing that you do not hesitate to rank Injustice with wisdom and virtue you have guessed most infallibly he replied then I certainly ought not to shrink from going through with the argument so long as I have reason to think that you throw simicus are speaking your real mind for I do believe that you are now in Earnest and are not amusing your self at our expense I may be an Earnest or not but
what is that to you to refute the argument is your business very true I said that is what I have to do but will you be so good as answer yet one more question does the just man try to gain any advantage over the just far otherwise if he did he would not be the simple amusing creature which he is and would he try to go beyond just action he would not and how would he regard the attempt to gain an advantage over the unjust would that be considered by him as just or unjust he
would think it just and would try to gain the advantage but he would not be able whether he would or would not be able I said is not to the point my question is only whether the just man while refusing to have more than another just man would wish and claim to have more than the unjust yes he would and what of the unjust does he claim to have more than the just man and to do more than is just of course he said for he claims to have more than all men and the unjust
man will strive and struggle to obtain more than the unjust man or action in order that he may have more than all true we may put the matter thus I said the just does not desire more than his like but more than his unlike whereas the unjust desires more than both his like and his unlike nothing he said can be better than that statement and the unjust is good and wise and the just is neither good again he said and is not the unjust like the wise and good and the just unlike them of course
he said he who is of a certain nature is like those who are of a certain nature he who is not not each of them I said is such as his like is certainly he replied very good thracimicus I said and now to take the case of the Arts you would admit that one man is a musician and another not a musician yes and which is wise and which is foolish clearly the musician is wise and he who is not a musician is foolish and he is good in as far as he is wise and
bad in as far as he is foolish yes and you would say the same sort of thing of the physician yes and do you think my excellent friend that a musician when he adjusts the liar would desire or claim to exceed or go beyond a musician in the tightening and loosening the strings I do not think that he would but he would claim to exceed the non-musician of course and what would you say of the physician in prescribing meats and drinks would he wish to go beyond another physician or beyond the practice of medicine he
would not but he would wish to go beyond the non-physician yes and about knowledge and ignorance in general see whether you think that any man who has knowledge ever would wish to have the choice of saying or doing more than another man who has knowledge would he not rather say or do the same as is like in the same case that I suppose can hardly be denied and what of the ignorant would he not desire to have more than either the knowing or the ignorant I dare say and the knowing is wise yes and the
wise is good true then the wise and good will not desire to gain more than his like but more than his unlike and opposite I suppose so whereas the bad and ignorant will desire to gain more than both yes but did we not say thrasymichus that the unjust goes beyond both his like and unlike were not these your words they were and you also said that the just will not go beyond his like but his unlike yes then the Justice like the wise and good and the unjust like the evil and ignorant that is the
inference and each of them is such as his like is that was admitted then the just has turned out to be wise and good and the unjust evil and ignorant thrasymichus made all these admissions not fluently as I repeat them but with extreme reluctance it was a hot summer's day and the perspiration poured from him in Torrance and then I saw what I had never seen before thrasymicus blushing as we were now agreed that Justice was virtue and wisdom and Injustice Vice and ignorance I proceeded to another Point well I said thrasymicus that matter is
now settled but were we not also saying that Injustice had strength do you remember yes I remember he said but do not suppose that I approve of what you are saying or have no answer if however I were to answer you would be quite certain to accuse me of haranguing therefore either permit me to have my say out or if you would rather ask do so and I will answer very good as they say to storytelling old women and will not yes and know certainly not I said if contrary to your real opinion yes he
said I will to please you since you will not let me speak what else would you have nothing in the world I said and if you are so disposed I will ask and you shall answer proceed then I will repeat the question which I asked before in order that our examination of the relative nature of justice and Injustice may be carried on regularly a statement was made that Injustice is stronger and more powerful than justice but now Justice having been identified with wisdom and virtue is easily shown to be stronger than Injustice if Injustice is
ignorance this can no longer be questioned by anyone but I want to view the matter through simicus in a different way you would not deny that a state may be unjust and may be unjustly attempting to enslave other states or may have already enslaved them and may be holding many of them in subjection true he replied and I will add that the best and most perfectly unjust state will be most likely to do so I know I said that such was your position but what I would further consider is whether this power which is possessed
by the Superior State can exist or be exercised without Justice or only with Justice if you are right in your view and Justice's wisdom then only with Justice but if I am right then without Justice I am delighted through simicus to see you not only nodding Ascent in dissent but making answers which are quite excellent that is out of Civility to you he replied you are very kind I said and would you have the goodness also to inform me whether you think that a state or an army or a band of robbers and thieves or
any of other gang of evildoers could act at all if they injured one another no indeed he said they could not but if they abstain from injuring one another then they might act together better yes and this is because Injustice creates divisions and hatreds and fighting and Justice imparts Harmony and friendship is not that true thracimicus I agree he said because I do not wish to quarrel with you how good of you I said but I should like to know also whether Injustice having this tendency to arouse hatred wherever existing among slaves or among Freeman
will not make them hate one another and set them at variance and render them incapable of common action certainly and even if Injustice be found in two only will they not quarrel and fight and become enemies to one another and to the just they will and suppose Injustice abiding in a single person would your wisdom say that she loses or that she retains her natural power let us assume that she retains her power yet is not the power which Injustice exercises of such a nature that wherever she takes up her Abode whether in a city
in an Army in a family or in any other body that body is to begin with rendered incapable of United action by reason of sedition and distraction and does it not become its own enemy and at variance with all the opposes it and with the just is not this the case yes certainly and is not Injustice equally fatal when existing in a single person in the first place rendering him incapable of action because he is not at Unity with himself and in the second place making him an enemy to himself and the just is not
that true through simicus yes and oh my friend I said surely the gods are just granted that they are but if so the unjust will be the enemy of the Gods and the just will be their friend Feast away in Triumph and take your fill of the argument I will not oppose you lest I should displease the company well then proceed with your answers and let me have the remainder of my repast for we have already shown that the just are clearly wiser and better and abeler than the unjust and that the unjust are incapable
of common action name more that to speak as we did of men who are evil acting at any time vigorously together is not strictly true for if they had been perfectly evil they would have laid hands upon one another but it is evident that there must have been some remnant of Justice in them which enabled them to combine if there had not been they would have injured one another as well as their victims they were but half villains in their Enterprises for had they been whole villains and utterly unjust they would have been utterly incapable
of action that is I believe is the truth of the matter and not what you said at first but whether the just have a better and happier life than the unjust is a further question which we also propose to consider I think that they have and for the reasons which I have given but still I should like to examine further for No Light matter is at stake nothing less than the rule of human life proceed I will proceed by asking a question would you not say that a horse has some end I should and the
end or use of a horse or of anything would be that which could not be accomplished or not so well accomplished by any other thing I do not understand he said let me explain can you see except with the I certainly not or here except with the ear no these then may be truly said to be the ends of these organs they may but you can cut off a vine branch with a dagger or with a chisel and in many other ways of course and yet not so well as with a pruning hook made for
the purpose true may we not say that this is the end of a pruning hook we may then now I think you will have no difficulty in understanding my meaning when I ask the question whether the end of anything would be that which could not be accomplished or not so well accomplished by any other thing I understand your meaning he said and ascent and that to which an end is appointed has also an Excellence need I ask again whether the eye has an end it has and has not the eye in excellence yes and the
ear has an end and an Excellence also true and the same is true of all other things they have each of them an end and a special Excellence that is so well and can the eyes fulfill their end if they are wanting in their own proper excellence and have a defect instead how can they he said if they are blind and cannot see you mean to say if they have lost their proper Excellence which is sight but I have not arrived at that point yet I would rather ask the question more generally and only inquire
whether the things which fulfill their ends fulfill them by their own proper excellence and fail of fulfilling them by their own defect certainly he replied I might say the same of the ears when deprived of their own proper Excellence they cannot fulfill their end true and the same observation will apply to all other things I agree well and has not the soul and end which nothing else can fulfill for example to superintend and command and deliberate and the like are not these functions proper to the soul and can they rightly be assigned to any other
to no other and is not life to be reckoned among the ends of the Soul assuredly he said and has not the soul and Excellence also yes and can she or can she not fulfill her own ends when deprived of that Excellence she cannot then an evil Soul must necessarily be an evil ruler and superintendent and the good Soul a good ruler yes necessarily and we have admitted that Justice is the Excellence of the soul and Injustice the defect of the soul that has been admitted then the just soul and the just man will live
well well and the unjust man will live ill that is what your argument proves and he who lives well is blessed and happy and he who lives ill the reverse of happy certainly then the just is happy and the unjust miserable so be it but happiness and not misery is profitable of course then my blessed thrasymicus Injustice can never be more profitable than Justice let this Socrates he said be your entertainment at the Bender deer for which I am indebted to you I said now that you have grown gentle towards me and have left off
scolding nevertheless I have not been well entertained but that was my own fault and not yours as an Epicure snatches a taste of every dish which is successively brought to table he not having allowed himself time to enjoy the one before so have I gone from one subject to another without having discovered what I sought at first the nature of Justice I left that inquiry and turned away to consider whether Justice is virtue and wisdom or evil and folly and when there arose a further question about the comparative advantages of justice and Injustice I could
not refrain from passing on to that and the result of the whole discussion has been that I know nothing at all for I know not what Justice is and therefore I am not likely to know whether it is or is not a virtue nor can I say whether the just man is happy or unhappy book two with these words I was thinking that I had made an end of the discussion but the end in truth proved to be only a beginning for glaucon who is always the most pugnacious of men was dissatisfied at thrasymica's retirement
he wanted to have the battle out so he said to me Socrates do you wish really to persuade us or only to seem to have persuaded us that to be just is always better than to be unjust I should wish really to persuade you I replied if I could then you certainly have not succeeded let me ask you now how would you arrange goods are there not some which we welcome for their own sakes and independently of their consequences as for example harmless pleasures and enjoyments which Delight us at the time although nothing follows from
them I agree in thinking that there is such a class I replied is there not also a second class of goods such as knowledge site Health which are desirable not only in themselves but also for their results certainly I said and would you not recognize a third class such as gymnastic and the care of the sick and the physician's art also the various ways of money making these do us good but we regard them as disagreeable and no one would choose them for their own sakes but only for the sake of some reward or result
which flows from them there is I said this third class also but why do you ask because I want to know in which of the three classes you would Place Justice in the highest class I replied among those goods which he who would be happy desires both for their own sake and for the sake of their results then the many are of another mind they think that Justice is to be reckoned in the Troublesome class among Goods which are to be pursued for the sake of rewards and of reputation but in themselves are disagreeable and
rather to be avoided I know I said that this is their manner of thinking and that this was the thesis which thrasymchus was maintaining just now when he censured Justice and praised Injustice but I am too stupid to be convinced by him I wish he said that you would hear me as well as him and then I shall see whether you and I agree for thrasymica seems to me like a snake to have been Charmed by your voice sooner than he ought to have been but to my mind the nature of justice and Injustice have
not yet been made clear setting aside their rewards and results I want to know what they are in themselves and how they inwardly work in the soul if you please then I will revive the argument of thracimicus and first I will speak of the nature and origin of Justice according to the common view of them secondly I will show that all men who practice Justice do so against their will of necessity but not as a good and thirdly I will argue that there is reason in this View for the life of the unjustice after all
better far than the life of the just if what they say is true Socrates since I myself am not of their opinion but still I acknowledge that I am perplexed when I hear the voices of thracimicus and myriads of others dinning in my ears and on the other hand I have never yet heard the superiority of Justice to Injustice maintained by anyone in a satisfactory way I want to hear Justice praised in respect of itself then I shall be satisfied and you are the person from whom I think that I am most likely to hear
this and therefore I will praise the unjust life to the utmost of my power and my manner of speaking will indicate the manner in which I desire to hear you too praising Justice and censuring Injustice will you say whether you approve of my proposal indeed I do nor can I imagine any theme about which a man of sense would often or wish to converse I am delighted he replied to hear you say so and shall Begin by speaking as I proposed of the nature and origin of Justice they say that to do Injustice is by
nature good to suffer Injustice evil but that the evil is greater than the good and so when men have both done and suffered Injustice and have had experience of both not being able to avoid the one and obtain the other they think that they had better agree among themselves to have neither hence there arise laws and mutual covenants and that which is ordained by law is termed by them lawful and just this they affirm to be the origin and nature of Justice it is a mean or compromise between the best of all which is to
do Injustice and not be punished and the worst of all which is to suffer Injustice without the power of retaliation and Justice being at a middle point between the two is tolerated not as a good but as the Lesser evil and honored by reason of the inability of men to do Injustice for no man who is worthy to be called a man would ever submit to such an agreement if he were able to resist he would be mad if he did such is the received account Socrates of the nature and origin of Justice now that
those who practice Justice do so involuntarily and because they have not the power to be unjust will best appear if we imagine something of this kind having given both to the just and the unjust power to do what they will let us watch and see where their desire will lead them then we shall discover in the very act that just just man to be proceeding along the same road following their interest which all Natures deemed to be their good and are only diverted into the path of Justice by the force of law the Liberty which
we are supposing may be most completely given to them in the form of such a power as is said to have been possessed by gigas the ancestor of Crisis the lydian according to the tradition gaijus was a Shepherd in the service of the king of Lydia there was a great storm and an earthquake made an opening in the Earth at the place where he was feeding his flock amazed at the site he descended into the opening where among other Marvels he beheld a hollow Brazen horse having doors at which he stooping and looking in saw
a dead body of stature as appeared to him more than human and having nothing on but a gold ring this he took from the finger of the dead and re-ascended now the Shepherds met together according to custom that they might send their monthly report about the flocks to the king into their assembly he came having the ring on his finger and as he was sitting among them he chanced to turn the collet of the Ring inside his hand when instantly he became invisible to the rest of the company and they began to speak of him
as if he were no longer present he was astonished at this and again touching the ring he turned the collet outwards and reappeared he made several Trials of the ring and always with the same result when he turned the collet inwards he became invisible when outwards he reappeared whereupon he can tried to be chosen one of the messengers who were sent to the court where as soon as he arrived he seduced the queen and with her help conspired against the king and slew him and took the kingdom suppose now that there were two such magic
rings and the just put on one of them and the unjust the other no man Can Be Imagined to be of such an iron nature that he would stand fast in Justice no man would keep his hands off what was not his own when he could safely take what he liked out of the market or go into houses and lie with anyone at his pleasure or kill or release from prison whom he would and in all respects be like a God among men then the actions of the just would be as the actions of the
unjust they would both come at last to the same point and this we may truly affirm to be a great proof that a man is just not willingly or because he thinks that Justice is any good to him individually but of necessity for wherever anyone thinks that he can safely be unjust there he is unjust for all men believe in their hearts that Injustice is far more profitable to the individual than Justice and he who argues as I have been supposing will say that they are right if you could imagine anyone obtaining this power of
becoming invisible and never doing any wrong or touching what was another's he would be thought by the Lookers on to be a most wretched idiot although they would praise him to one another's faces and keep up appearances with one another from a fear that they too might suffer Injustice enough of this now if we are to form a real Judgment of the life of the just and unjust we must isolate them there is no other way and how is the isolation to be affected I answer let the unjust man be entirely unjust and the just
man entirely just nothing is to be taken away from either of them and both are to be perfectly furnished for the work of their respective lives first let the unjust be like other distinguished masters of craft like the skillful pilot or physician who knows intuitively his own powers and keeps within their limits and who if he fails at any point is able to recover himself so let the unjust make his unjust attempts in the right way and lie hidden if he means to be great in his Injustice he who has found out is nobody for
the highest reach of Injustice is to be deemed just when you are not therefore I say that in the perfectly unjust man we must assume the most perfect Injustice there is to be no deduction but we must allow him while doing the most unjust acts to have acquired the greatest reputation for justice if you have taken a false step he must be able to recover himself he must be one who can speak with effect if any of his deeds come to light and who can force his way where force is required by his courage and
strength and command of money and friends and at his side let us place the just man in his nobleness and simplicity wishing as escalus says to be and not to seem good there must be no seeming for if he seemed to be just he will be honored and rewarded and then we shall not know whether he is just for the sake of Justice or for the sake of honors and rewards therefore let him be clothed Injustice only and have no other covering and he must be imagined in a state of Life the opposite of the
former let him be the best of men and let him be thought the worst then he will have been put to the proof and we shall see whether he will be affected by the fear of infamy and its consequences and let him continue thus to the hour of death being just and seeming to be unjust when both have reached the uttermost extreme the one of justice and the other of Injustice let judgment be given which of them is the happier of the two Heavens my dear Glock and I said how energetically you polish them up
for the decision first one and then the other as if they were two statues I do my best he said and now that we know what they are like there is no difficulty in tracing out the sort of Life which awaits either of them this I will proceed to describe but as you may think the description a little too coarse I ask you to suppose Socrates that The Words which follow are not mine let me put them into the mouths of the eulogists of Injustice they will tell you that the just man who is thought
unjust will be scourged racked bound will have his eyes burnt out and at last after suffering every kind of evil he will be impaled then he will understand that he ought to seem only and not to be just the words of escalus may be more truly spoken of the unjust than of the just for the unjust is pursuing a reality he does not live with a view to appearances he wants to be really unjust and not to seem only his mind has a soil deep and fertile out of which spring his prudent councils in the
first place he is thought just and therefore Bears rule in the city he can marry whom he will and give in marriage to whom he will also he can trade and deal where he likes and always to his own Advantage because he has no misgivings about Injustice and at every contest whether in public or private he gets the better of his antagonists and gains at their expense and is Rich and of his gains he can benefit his friends and harm his enemies moreover he can offer sacrifices and dedicate gifts to the gods abundantly and magnificently
and can honor the gods or any man whom he wants to honor in a far better style than the just and therefore he is likely to be dearer than they are to the gods and thus Socrates Gods and Men are said to unite in making the life of the unjust better than the life of the just I was going to say something in answer to glocken when adamantis his brother interposed Socrates he said you do not suppose that there is nothing more to be urged why what else is there I answered the strongest point of
all has not been even mentioned he replied well then according to the proverb let brother help brother if he fails in any part do you assist him although I must confess that glocken has already said quite enough to lay me in the dust and take from me the power of helping Justice nonsense he replied but let me add something more there is another side to glaucon's argument about the praise and censure of justice and Injustice which is equally required in order to bring out what I believe to be his meaning parents and tutors are always
telling their sons and their wards that they are to be just but why not for the sake of justice but for the sake of character and reputation in the hope of obtaining for him who is reputed just some of those offices marriages and the like which glaucon has enumerated among the advantages accruing to the unjust from the reputation of Justice more however is made of appearances by this class of persons than by the others for they throw in the good opinion of the Gods and will tell you of a shower of benefits which the heavens
as they say Reign upon the pious and this Accords with the testimony of the noble hasiod and Homer the first of whom says that the gods make The Oaks of the just to Bear acorns at their Summit and bees in the middle and the Sheep are bowed down with the weight of their fleeces and many other blessings of a like kind are provided for them and Homer has a very similar strain for he speaks of one whose Fame is as the fame of some blameless King who like a god maintains Justice to whom the Black
Earth brings forth wheat and barley whose trees are bowed with fruit and his sheep never fail to bear and the Sea gives him fish still Grandeur are the gifts of Heaven which musaeus and his son vouch safe to the just they take them down into the world below where they have the Saints lying on couches at a feast everlastingly drunk crowned with garlands their idea seems to be that an immortality of drunkenness is the highest Mead of virtue some extend their rewards yet further the posterity as they say of the faithful and just shall survive
to the third and fourth generation this is the style in which they praise justice but about the wicked there is another strain they bury them in a Slough in Hades and make them carry water in a sieve also while they are yet living they bring them to infamy and inflict upon them the punishments which glaucom described as the portion of the just who are reputed to be unjust nothing else does their invention Supply such is their manner of praising the one and censuring the other once more Socrates I will ask you to consider another way
of speaking about Justice and Injustice which is not confined to The Poets but is found in prose writers the universal voice of mankind is always declaring that Justice and virtue are honorable but Grievous and toilsome and that the pleasures of vice and Injustice are easy of attainment and are only censured by law and opinion they say also that honesty is for the most part less profitable than dishonesty and they are quite ready to call wicked men happy and to honor them both in public and private when they are rich or in any of other way
influential while they despise and Overlook those who may be weak and poor even though acknowledging them to be better than the others but most extraordinary of all is their mode of speaking about virtue and the gods they say that the gods apportioned Calamity and misery to many good men and good and happiness to the wicked and mendicant prophets go to Rich men's doors and persuade them that they have a power committed to them by the gods of making an atonement for a man's own or his ancestors sins by sacrifices or charms with rejoicings and Feasts
and they promise to harm an enemy whether just or unjust at a small cost with magic arts and incantations binding Heaven as they say to execute their will and The Poets are the authorities to whom they appeal now smoothing the path of Vice with the words of hesiod Vice may be had in abundance without trouble the way is smooth and her dwelling place is near but before virtue the gods have set Toil and a tedious and Uphill road then citing Homer as a witness that the gods may be influenced by men for he also says
the gods too may be turned from their purpose and men pray to them and avert their wrath by sacrifices and soothing entreaties and by Libations and the odor of fat when they have sinned and transgressed and they produce a host of books written by Muse and Orpheus who were children of the moon and the muses that is what they say according to which they perform their ritual and persuade not only individuals but whole cities that expiations in atone for sin may be made by sacrifices and Amusements which fill a vacant hour and are equally at
the service of the living and the dead the latter sort they call Mysteries and they redeem us from the Pains of hell but if we neglect them no one knows what awaits us he proceeded and now when the young hear all this said about virtue and vice and the way in which Gods and Men regard them how are their minds likely to be affected my dear Socrates those of them I mean who are quick-witted and like bees on the wing light on every flower and from all that they hear are prone to draw conclusions as
to what manner of persons they should be and in what way they should walk if they would make the best of life probably the youth will say to himself in the words of pindar can I buy Justice or by crooked ways of Deceit or send a loftier tower which may be a fortress to me all my days for what men say is that if I am really just and am not also thought just Prophet there is none but the pain and loss on the other hand are unmistakable but if though unjust I acquire the reputation
of Justice a Heavenly life is promised to me since then as philosophers prove appearance tyrannizes over truth and his Lord of Happiness to appearance I must devote myself I will describe around me a picture and Shadow of virtue to be the vestibule and exterior of my house behind I will Trail the subtle and crafty Fox as archilicus greatest of sages recommends but I hear someone exclaiming that the concealment of wickedness is often difficult to which I answer nothing great is easy nevertheless the argument indicates this if we would be happy to be the path along
which we should proceed with a view to concealment we will establish secret brotherhoods and political clubs and there are professors of rhetoric who teach the art of persuading courts and assemblies and so partly by persuasion and partly by force I shall make unlawful gains and not be punished still I hear a voice saying that the gods cannot be deceived neither can they be compelled but what if there are no gods or suppose them to have no care of human things why in either case should we mind about concealment and even if there are gods and
they do care about us yet we know of them only from tradition and the genealogies of the poets and these are the very persons who say that they may be influenced and turned by sacrifices and soothing entreaties and by offerings let us be consistent then and believe both or neither if the poet speak truly why then we had better be unjust an offer of the fruits of Injustice for if we are just although we may escape the Vengeance of Heaven We Shall lose the gains of Injustice but if we are unjust we shall keep the
gains and by our sinning and praying and praying and sinning the gods will be propitiated and we shall not be punished but there is a world Below in which either we or our posterity will suffer for our unjust Deeds yes my friend will be the reflection but there are Mysteries and atoning deities and these have great power that is what Mighty cities declare and the children of the Gods who were their poets and Prophets bear alike testimony on what principle then shall we any longer choose Justice rather than the worst Injustice when if we only
unite the latter with a deceitful regard to appearances we shall fare to our mind both with Gods and Men in life and after death as the most numerous and the highest authorities tell us knowing all this Socrates how can a man who has any superiority of mind or person or rank or wealth be willing to honor Justice or indeed to refrain from laughing when he hears Justice praised and even if there should be someone who is able to disprove the truth of my words and who is satisfied the justice is best still he is not
angry with the unjust but is very ready to forgive them because he also knows that men are not just of their own free will unless parent Venture there be someone whom the Divinity within him may have inspired with a hatred of Injustice or who has attained knowledge of the truth but no other man he only blames Injustice who owing to cowardice or age or some weakness has not the power of being unjust and this is proved by the fact that when he obtains the power he immediately becomes unjust as far as he can be the
cause of all this Socrates was indicated by us at the beginning of the argument when my brother and I told you how astonished we were to find that of all the professing panagists of Justice beginning with the ancient Heroes of whom any Memorial has been preserved to us and ending with the men of our own time no one has ever blamed Injustice or praised Justice except with a view to the glories honors and benefits which flow from them no one has ever adequately described either in verse or prose the true essential nature of either of
them abiding in the soul and invisible to any human or Divine eye or shown that of all the things of a man's Soul which he has within him Justice is the greatest good and Injustice the greatest evil had this been the universal strain had you sought to persuade us of this from our youth upwards we should not have been on the watch to keep one another from doing wrong but everyone would have been his own Watchman because afraid if he did wrong of harboring in himself the greatest of evils I dare say that thracimicus and
others would seriously hold the language which I have been merely repeating and words even stronger than these about Justice and Injustice grossly as I conceive perverting their true nature but I speak in this vehement manner as I must frankly confess to you because I want to hear from you the opposite side and I would ask you to show not only the superiority which justice has over Injustice but what effect they have on the possessor of them which makes the one to be a good and the other an evil to him and please as glaucom requested
of you to exclude reputations for unless you take away from each of them his true reputation and add on the false we shall say that you do not praise justice but the appearance of it we shall think that you are only exhorting us to keep Injustice dark and that you really agree with thrasymicus in thinking that Justice is another's good and the interest of the stronger and that Injustice is a man's own profit and interest though injurious to the weaker now as you have admitted that Justice is one of that highest class of goods which
are desired indeed for their results but in a far greater degree for their own sakes like sight or hearing or knowledge or health or any other real and natural and not merely conventional good I would ask you in your praise of Justice to regard one point only I mean the essential good and evil which Justice and Injustice work in the possessors of them let others praise Justice and censure Injustice magnifying the rewards and honors of the one and abusing the other that is a manner of arguing which coming from them I am ready to tolerate
but from you who have spent your whole life in the consideration of this question unless I hear the contrary from your own lips I expect something better and therefore I say not only prove to us that Justice is better than Injustice but show what they either of them do to the possessor of them which makes the one to be a good and the other an evil whether seen or unseen by Gods and Men I had always admired The Genius of glaucon and adimantus but on hearing these words I was quite delighted and said sons of
an illustrious father that was not a bad beginning of the ellijayak verses which the admirer of glaucon made in honor of you after you had distinguished yourselves at the Battle of magara Sons of Ariston he sang Divine offspring of an illustrious hero the epithet is very appropriate for there is something truly Divine in being able to argue as you have done for the superiority of Injustice and remaining unconvinced by your own arguments and I do believe that you are not convinced this I infer from your general character for had I judged only from your speeches
I should have mistrusted you but now the greater my confidence in you the greater is my difficulty in knowing what to say for I am in a strait between two on the one hand I feel that I am unequal to the task and my inability is brought home to me by the fact that you were not satisfied with the answer which I made to thrissimicus proving as I thought the superiority which justice has over Injustice and yet I cannot refuse to help while breath and speech remained to me I'm afraid that there would be an
impiety in being present when Justice is evil spoken of and not lifting up a hand in her defense and therefore I had best give such help as I can glocken and the rest entreated Me by all means not to let the question drop but to proceed in the investigation they wanted to arrive at the truth first about the nature of justice and Injustice and secondly about their relative advantages I told them what I really thought that the inquiry would be of a serious nature and would require very good eyes seeing then I said that we
are no great wits I think that we had better adopt a method which I may illustrate thus suppose that a short-sighted person had been asked by someone to read small letters from a distance and it occurred to someone else that they might be found in another place which was larger and in which the letters were larger if they were the same and he could read the larger letters first and then proceed to the Lesser this would have been thought a rare piece of Good Fortune very true said adamantis but how does the illustration apply to
our inquiry I will tell you I replied Justice which is the subject of our inquiry is as you know sometimes spoken of as the virtue of an individual and sometimes as the virtue of a state true he replied and is not a state larger than an individual it is then in the larger the quantity of justice is likely to be larger and more easily discernible I propose therefore that we inquire into the nature of justice and Injustice first as they appear in the state and secondly in the individual proceeding from the greater to the Lesser
and comparing them that he said is an excellent proposal and if we imagine the state in process of creation we shall see the justice and Injustice of the state in process of creation also I dare say when the state is completed there may be a hope that the object of our search will be more easily discovered yes far more easily but ought we to attempt to construct one I said for to do so as I'm inclined to think will be a very serious task reflect therefore I have reflected said adamantis and I'm anxious that you
should proceed a state I said arises as I conceive out of the needs of mankind no one is self-sufficing but all of us have many wants can any other origin of a state Be Imagined there can be no other then as we have many wants and many persons are needed to supply them one takes a helper for one purpose and another for another and when these partners and helpers are gathered together in one habitation the body of inhabitants is termed a state true he said and they exchange with one another and one gives and another
receives under the idea that the exchange will be for their good very true then I said let us begin and create an idea a state and yet the true creator is necessity who is the mother of our invention of course he replied now the first and greatest of Necessities is food which is the condition of life in existence certainly the second is a dwelling and the third clothing and the like true and now let us see how our city will be able to supply this great demand we may suppose that one man is a husbandman
another a builder someone else a weaver shall we add to them a Shoemaker or perhaps some other purveyor to our bodily wants quite right the barest notion of a state must include four or five men clearly and how will they proceed will each bring the result of his labors into a common stock the individual husbandman for example producing for four and laboring four times as long and as much as he need in the provision of food with which he supplies others as well as himself or will he have nothing to do with others and not
be at the trouble of producing for them but provide for himself alone a fourth of the food in a fourth of the time and in the remaining three-fourths of his time be employed in making a house or a coat or a pair of shoes having no partnership with others but supplying himself all his own wants Addie mantis thought that he should aim at producing food only and not at producing everything probably I replied that would be the better way and when I hear you say this I am myself reminded that we are not all alike
there are diversities of natures Among Us which are adapted to different occupations very true and will you have a work better done when the Workman has many occupations or when he has only one when he has only one further there can be no doubt that a work is spoiled when not done at the right time no doubt for business is not disposed to wait until the doer of the business is at leisure but the doer must follow up what he is doing and make the business his first object he must and if so we must
infer that all things are produced more plentifully and easily and of a better quality when one man does one thing which is natural to him and does it at the right time and leaves other things undoubtedly then more than four citizens will be required for the husbandman will not make his own plowermatic or other Implements of Agriculture if they are to be good for anything neither will the Builder make his tools and he too needs many and in like manner the Weaver and Shoemaker true then carpenters and Smiths and many other Artisans will be sharers
in our little state which is already beginning to grow true yet even if we add Nethers Shepherds and other herdsmen in order that our husbandmen may have oxen to plow with and Builders as well as husbandmen may have draft cattle and Couriers and Weavers fleeces and hides still our state will not be very large that is true yet neither will it be a very small state which contains all these then again there is the situation of the city to find a place where nothing need be imported is well nigh impossible impossible then there must be
another class of citizens who will bring the required Supply from another city there must but if the trader goes empty-handed having nothing which they require who would Supply his need he will come back empty-handed that is certain and therefore what they produce at home must be not only enough for themselves but such both in quantity and quality as to accommodate those from whom their wants are supplied very true then more husband men and more Artisans will be required they will not to mention the importers and exporters who are called Merchants yes then we shall want
Merchants we shall and if merchandise is to be carried over the sea skillful Sailors will also be needed and in considerable numbers yes in considerable numbers then again within the city how will they exchange their Productions to secure such an exchange was as you will remember one of our principal objects when we formed them into a society and constituted a state clearly they will buy and sell then they will need a Marketplace and a money token for purposes of exchange certainly suppose now that a husbandman or an artisan brings some production to Market and he
comes at a time when there is no one to exchange with him is he to leave his calling and sit idle in the marketplace not at all he will find people there who seeing the want undertake the office of salesmen in well-ordered States they are commonly those who are the weakest in bodily strength and therefore of little use for any other purpose their duty is to be in the market and to give money in exchange for goods to those who desire to sell and to take money from those who desire to buy this want then
creates a class of retail traders in our state is not retailer the term which is applied to those who sit in the marketplace engaged in buying and selling while those who wander from one city to another are called Merchants yes he said and there is another class of servants who are intellectually hardly on the level of companionship still they have plenty of bodily strength for labor which accordingly they sell and are called if I do not mistake hirelings higher being the name which is given to the price of their labor true then hirelings will help
to make up our population yes and now adamantus is our state matured and perfected I think so where then is Justice and where is Injustice and in what part of the state did they spring up probably in the dealings of these citizens with one another I cannot imagine that they are more likely to be found anywhere else I dare say that you are right in your suggestion I said we had better think the matter out and not shrink from the inquiry let us then consider first of all what will be their way of life now
that we have thus established them will they not produce corn and wine and clothes and shoes and build houses for themselves and when they are housed they will work in summer commonly stripped and barefoot but in Winter substantially clothed and shod they will feed on barley meal and flour of wheat baking and kneading them making Noble cakes and Loaves these they will serve up on a mat of reeds or on clean leaves themselves reclining the wild upon beds strewn with you or Myrtle and they and their children will Feast drinking of the wine which they
have made wearing garlands on their heads and hemming the Praises of the Gods in happy converse with one another and they will take care that their families do not exceed their means having an eye to Poverty or War but said glaucon into posing you have not given them a relish to their meal true I replied I had forgotten of course they must have a relish salt and olives and cheese and they will boil roots and herbs such as country people prepare for a dessert we shall give them figs and peas and beans and they will
roast Myrtle berries and acorns at the fire drinking in moderation and with such a diet they may be expected to live in peace and health to a good old age and bequeath a similar life to their children after them yes Socrates he said and if you were providing for a city of pigs how else would you feed the beasts but what would you have glocken I replied why he said you should give them the ordinary conveniences of life people who are to be comfortable are accustomed to lie on sofas and dine off tables and they
should have sauces and sweets in the modern style yes I said now I understand the question which you would have me consider is not only how a state but how a luxurious state is created and possibly there is no harm in this for in such a state we shall be more likely to see how Justice and Injustice originate in my opinion the true and healthy constitution of the state is the one which I have described but if you wish also to see a stated fever heat I have no objection for I suspect that many will
not be satisfied with the simpler way of life they will be for adding sofas and tables and other Furniture also deities and perfumes and incense and courtesans and cakes all these not of one sort only but in every variety we must go beyond the necessaries of which I was at first speaking such as houses and clothes and shoes the Arts of the painter and the embroiderer will have to be set in motion and gold and ivory and all sorts of materials must be procured true he said then we must enlarge our borders for the original
healthy state is no longer sufficient now will the city have to fill and swell with a multitude of callings which are not required by any natural want such as the whole tribe of hunters and actors of whom one large class have to do with forms and colors another will be the voteries of Music poets and their attendant train of rhapsodists players dancers contractors also makers of diverse kinds of Articles including women's dresses and we shall want more servants will not tutors be also in request a nurse is wet and dry Tire women and Barbers as
well as confectioners and cooks and swinehurds too who were not needed and therefore had no place in the former edition of our state but are needed now they must not be forgotten and there will be animals of many other kinds if people eat them certainly and living in this way we shall have much greater need of Physicians than before much greater and the country which was enough to support the original inhabitants will be too small now and not enough quite true then a slice of our neighbor's land will be wanted by us for pasture and
tillage and they will want a slice of ours if like ourselves they exceed the limit of necessity and give themselves up to the unlimited accumulation of wealth that Socrates will be inevitable and so we shall go to war glocken shall we not most certainly he replied then without determining as yet whether War does good or harm thus much we may affirm that now we have discovered war to be derived from causes which are also the causes of almost all the evils in States private as well as public undoubtedly and our state must once more enlarge
and this time the enlargement will be nothing short of a whole Army which will have to go out and fight with the invaders for all that we have as well as for the things and persons whom we were describing above why he said are they not capable of Defending themselves no I said not if we were right in the principle which was acknowledged by all of us when we were framing the state the principle as you will remember was that one man cannot practice many Arts with success very true he said but is not war
and art certainly and an art requiring as much attention as shoemaking quite true and the Shoemaker was not allowed by us to be a husbandman or a weaver or a builder in order that we might have our shoes well made but to him and to every other worker was assigned one work for which he was by Nature fitted and at that he was to continue working all his life long and at no other he was not to let opportunities slip and then he would become a good Workman now nothing can be more important than that
the work of a soldier should be well done but his war and art so easily acquired that a man may be a warrior who is also a husbandman or Shoemaker or other Artisan although no one in the world would be a good dice or draft player who merely took up the game as a recreation and had not from his earliest years devoted himself to this and nothing else no tools will make a man a skilled Workman or master of Defense nor be of any use to him who has not learned how to handle them and
has never bestowed any attention upon them how then will he who takes up a shield or other Implement of War become a good fighter all in a day whether with heavy armed or any other kind of troops yes he said the tools which would teach men their own use would be Beyond price and the higher the duties of the Guardian I said The more time and skill and art and application will be needed by him no doubt he replied will he not also require natural aptitude for his calling certainly then it will be our duty
to select if we can Natures which are fitted for the task of guarding the city it will and the selection will be no easy matter I said but we must be brave and do our best we must is not the noble youth very like a well-bred dog in respect of guarding and watching what do you mean I mean that both of them ought to be quick to see and Swift to overtake the enemy when they see him and strong too if when they have caught him they have to fight with him all these qualities he
replied will certainly be required by them well and your guardian must be brave if he is to fight well certainly and is he likely to be brave who has no Spirit whether horse or dog or any other animal have you never observed how invincible and unconquerable is spirit and how the presence of it makes the soul of any creature to be absolutely fearless and indomitable I have then now we have a clear notion of the bodily qualities which are required in the guardian true and also of the mental ones his soul is to be full
of spirit yes but are not these spirited Natures apt to be Savage with one another and with everybody else a difficulty by no means easy to overcome he replied whereas I said they ought to be dangerous to their enemies and gentle to their friends if not they will destroy themselves without waiting for their enemies to destroy them true he said what is to be done then I said how shall we find a gentle nature which has also a great spirit for the one is the contradiction of the other true he will not be a good
Guardian who is wanting in either of these two qualities and yet the combination of them appears to be impossible and hence we must infer that to be a good Guardian is impossible I am afraid that what you say is true he replied here feeling perplexed I began to think over what had preceded my friend I said no wonder that we are in a perplexity for we have lost sight of the image which we had before us what do you mean he said I mean to say that there do exist Natures gifted with those opposite qualities
and where do you find them many animals I replied furnish examples of them our friend the dog is a very good one you know that well-bred dogs are perfectly gentle to their familiars and acquaintances and the reverse to strangers yes I know then there is nothing impossible or out of the order of nature in our finding a guardian who has a similar combination of qualities certainly not would not he who is fitted to be a guardian besides the spirited nature need to have the qualities of a philosopher I do not apprehend your meaning the trait
of which I am speaking I replied may be also seen in the dog and is remarkable in the animal what trait why a dog whenever he sees a stranger is angry when an acquaintance he welcomes him although the one has never done him any harm nor the other any good did this never strike you as curious the matter never struck me before but I quite recognize the truth of your remark and surely this Instinct of the dog is very Charming your dog is a true philosopher why why because he distinguishes the face of a friend
and of an enemy only by the Criterion of knowing and not knowing and must not an animal be a lover of learning who determines what he likes and dislikes by the test of knowledge and ignorance most assuredly and is not the love of learning the love of wisdom which is philosophy they are the same he replied and may we not say confidently of man also that he who is likely to be gentle to his friends and acquaintances must by Nature be a lover of wisdom and knowledge that we may safely affirm then he who is
to be a really good and Noble guardian of the state will require to unite in himself philosophy and spirit and swiftness and strength undoubtedly then we have found the desired natures and now that we have found them how are they to be reared and educated is not this an inquiry which may be expected to throw light on the greater inquiry which is our final end how do justice and Injustice grow up in States for we do not want either to Omit what is to the point or to draw out the argument to An Inconvenient length
adamantis thought that the inquiry would be of great service to us then I said my dear friend the task must not be given up even if somewhat long certainly not come then and let us pass a Leisure hour in storytelling and our story shall be the education of Our Heroes by all means and what shall be their education can we find a better than the traditional sort and this has two divisions gymnastic for the body and music for the soul true Shall We Begin education with music and go on to gymnastic afterwards by all means
and when you speak of music do you include literature or not I do and literature may be either true or false yes and the young should be trained in both kinds and we begin with the false I do not understand your meaning he said you know I said that we begin by telling children stories which though not holy destitute of Truth are in the main fictitious and these stories are told them when they are not of an age to learn gymnastics very true that was my meaning when I said that we must teach music before
gymnastics quite right he said you know also that the beginning is the most important part of any work especially in the case of a young and tender thing for that is the time at which the character is being formed and the desired impression is more readily taken quite true and shall we just carelessly allow children to hear any casual Tales which may be devised by casual persons and to receive into their minds ideas for the most part the very opposite of those which we should wish them to have when they are grown up we cannot
then the first thing will be to establish a censorship of the writers of fiction and let the sensors receive any tale of fiction which is good and reject the bad and we will desire mothers and nurses to tell their children the authorized ones only let them fashion the mind with such Tales even more fondly than they mold the body with their hands but most of those which are now in use must be discarded of what are you speaking he said you may find a model of the Lesser in the greater I said for they are
necessarily of the same type and there is the Same Spirit in both of them very likely he replied but I do not as yet know what you would term the greater those I said which are narrated by Homer and hezid and the rest of the poets who have ever been the great storytellers of mankind but which stories do you mean he said and what fault do you find with them a fault which is most serious I said the fault of telling a lie and what is more a bad lie but when is this fault committed
whenever an erroneous representation is made of the nature of gods and heroes as when a painter paints a portrait not having the shadow of a likeness to the original yes he said that sort of thing is certainly very blameable but what are the stories which you mean first of all I said there was that greatest of all lies in high places which the poet told about Uranus and which was a bad lie too I mean what hasiod says that Uranus did and how Cronus retaliated on him the doings of Cronus and the sufferings which in
turn his son inflicted upon him even if they were true or certainly not to be lightly told to Young and thoughtless persons if possible they had better be buried in silence but if there is an absolute necessity for their mention a Chosen Few might hear them in a mystery and they should sacrifice not a common ellucinian Pig but some huge and unprocurable victim and then the number of the heroes will be very few indeed why yes said he those stories are extremely objectionable yes adamantis they are stories not to be repeated in our state the
young man should not be told that in committing the worst of crimes he is far from doing anything outrageous and that even if he chastises his father when he does wrong in whatever manner he will only be following the example of the first and greatest among the gods I entirely agree with you he said in my opinion those stories are quite unfit to be repeated neither if we mean our future Guardians to regard the habit of quarreling among themselves as of all things the bassist should any word be said to them of the wars in
heaven and of the plots and fight things of the Gods against one another for they are not true no we shall never mention the battles of the Giants or let them be embroidered on garments and we shall be silent about the innumerable other quarrels of gods and heroes with their friends and relatives if they would only believe us we would tell them that quarreling is Unholy and that never up to this time has there been any quarrel between citizens this is what old men and old women should begin by telling children and when they grow
up The Poets also should be told to compose for them in a similar spirit but The Narrative of Hephaestus binding here his mother or how on another occasion Zeus sent him flying for taking her part when she was being beaten and all the battles of the Gods in Homer these Tales must not be admitted into our state whether they are supposed to have an allegorical meaning or not for a young person cannot judge what is allegorical and what is literal anything that he receives into his mind at that age is likely to become indelible and
unalterable and therefore it is most important that the tales which the young first hear should be models of virtuous thoughts there you are right he replied but if anyone asks where are such models to be found and of what Tales are you speaking how shall we answer him I said to him you and I ate Mantis at this moment are not poets but founders of a state now the founders of a state ought to know the general forms in which poets should cast their tales and the limits which must be observed by them but to
make the tales is not their business very true he said but what are these forms of theology which you mean something of this kind I replied God is always to be represented as he truly is whatever be the sort of poetry epic lyric or tragic in which the rep presentation is given right and is he not truly good and must he not be represented as such certainly and no good thing is hurtful no indeed and that which is not hurtful hurts not certainly not and that which hurts not does no evil no and can that
which does no evil be a cause of evil impossible and the good is advantageous yes and therefore the cause of well-being yes it follows therefore that the good is not the cause of all things but of the good only assuredly then God if he be good is not the author of all things as the many assert but he is the cause of a few things only and not of most things that occur to men for few are the goods of human life and many are the evils and the good is to be attributed to God
Alone of the evils the causes are to be sought elsewhere and not in him that appears to me to be most true he said then we must not listen to Homer or to any other poet who is guilty of the Folly of saying that two casks lie at the threshold of Zeus full of lots one of good the other of evil lots and that he to whom Zeus gives a mixture of the two sometimes meets with evil Fortune at other times with good but that he to whom is given the cup of unmingled ill him
wild hunger drives or the beauteous Earth and again Zeus who is the dispenser of Good and Evil to us and if anyone asserts that the violation of Oaths and treaties which was really the work of pandarus was brought about by Athenian Zeus or that the strife and contention of the Gods was instigated by themas and Zeus he shall not have our approval neither will we allow our young men to hear the words of escalus that God plants guilt among men when he desires utterly to destroy a house and if a poet writes of the sufferings
of niobe the subject of the tragedy in which these iambic verses occur or of the House of pilops or of the Trojan War or on any similar theme either we must not permit him to say that these are the works of God or if they are of God he must devise some explanation of them such as we are seeking he must say that God did what was just and right and they were the better for being punished but that those who are punished are miserable and that God is the author of their misery the poet
is not to be permitted to say though he may say that the wicked are miserable because they require to be punished and are benefited by receiving punishment from God but that God being good is the author of evil to anyone is to be strenuously denied and not to be said or sung or heard in verse or prose by anyone whether old or young in any well-ordered Commonwealth such a fiction is suicidal ruinous impious I agree with you he replied and I'm ready to give my Ascent to the law let this then be one of our
rules and principles concerning the gods to which our poets and reciters will be expected to conform that God is not the author of all things but of good only that will do he said and what do you think of a second principle shall I ask you whether God is a magician and of a nature to appear insidiously now in one shape and now in another sometimes himself changing and passing into many forms sometimes deceiving us with the semblance of such Transformations or is he one in the same immutably fixed in his own proper image I
cannot answer you he said without more thought well I said but if we suppose a change in anything that change must be affected either by the thing itself or by some other thing most certainly and things which are at their best are also least liable to be altered or discomposed for example when healthiest and strongest the human frame is least liable to be affected by meats and drinks and the plant which is in the fullest Vigor also suffers least from winds or the heat of the Sun or any similar causes of course and will not
the bravest and wisest Soul be least confused or deranged by any external influence true and the same Principle as I should suppose applies to all composite things Furniture houses garments when good and well made they are least altered by time and circumstances very true then everything which is good whether made by art or nature or both is least liable to suffer change from without true but surely God and the things of God are in every way perfect of course they are then he can hardly be compelled by external influence to take many shapes he cannot
but may he not change and transform himself clearly he said that must be the case if he has changed at all and will he then change himself for the better and fairer or for the worse and more unsightly if he change it all he can only change for the worse for we cannot suppose him to be deficient either in virtue or beauty very true adamantis but then would anyone whether God or man desire to make himself worse impossible then it is impossible that God should ever be willing to change being as is supposed the fairest
and best that is conceivable every God remains absolutely and forever in his own form that necessarily follows he said in my judgment then I said my dear friend let none of the poets tell us that the gods taking the disguise of strangers from other lands walk up and down cities in all sorts of forms and let no one slander Proteus and thetas neither let anyone either in tragedy or in any other kind of poetry introduce here disguised in the likeness of a priestess asking in arms for the life-giving daughters of inaccos the river of Argos
let us have no more lies of that sort neither must we have mothers under the influence of The Poets scaring their children with a bad version of these myths telling how certain Gods as they say go about by night in the likeness of so many strangers and in diverse forms but let them take heed lest they make cowards of their children and at the same time speak blasphemy against the gods heaven forbid he said but although the gods are themselves unchangeable still by Witchcraft and deception they may make us think that they appear in various
forms perhaps he replied well but can you imagine that God will be willing to lie whether in word or deed or to put forth a phantom of himself I cannot say he replied do you not know I said that the true lie if such an expression may be allowed is hated of Gods and Men what do you mean he said I mean that no one is willingly deceived in that which is the truest and highest part of himself or about the truest and highest matters there above all he is most afraid of a lie having
possession of him still he said I do not comprehend you the reason is I replied that you attribute some profound meaning to my words but I am only saying that deception or being deceived or uninformed about the highest realities in the highest part of themselves which is the soul and in that part of them to have and to hold the LIE is what mankind least like that I say is what they utterly detest there is nothing more hateful to them and as I was just now remarking this ignorance in the soul of him who is
deceived may be called The True Lie for the lie in words is only a kind of imitation and shadowy image of a previous affection of the Soul not pure unadulterated falsehood am I not right perfectly right the True Lies hated not only by the gods but also by men yes whereas the lion words is in certain cases useful and not hateful in dealing with enemies that would be an instance or again when Those whom we call our friends in a fit of Madness or Illusion are going to do some harm then it is useful and
is a sort of medicine or preventive also in the tales of Mythology of which we were just now speaking because we do not know the truth about ancient times we make falsehood as much like truth as we can and so turn it to account very true he said but can any of these reasons apply to God can we suppose that he is ignorant of antiquity and therefore has recourse to invention that would be ridiculous he said then the lying poet has no place in our idea of God I should say not or perhaps he may
tell a lie because he's afraid of enemies that is inconceivable but he may have friends who are senseless or mad but no mad or senseless person can be a friend of God then no motive Can Be Imagined why God should lie none whatever then the Superhuman and divine is absolutely incapable of falsehood yes then is God perfectly simple and true both in word and deed he changes not he deceives not either by sign or word by dream or Waking Vision your thoughts he said are the reflection of my own you agree with me then I
said that this is the second type or form in which we should write and speak about Divine things the gods are not magicians who transform themselves neither do they deceive Mankind in any way I grant that then although we are admirers of Homer we do not admire the lying dream which Zeus sends to Agamemnon neither will we praise the verses of escalus in which thedus says that Apollo at her nuptials was celebrating in song her Fair progeny whose days were to be long and to know no sickness and when he had spoken of my lot
as in all things blessed of Heaven he raised a note of Triumph and cheered my soul and I thought that the word of Phoebus being Divine and full of Prophecy would not fail and now he himself who uttered the strain he who was present at the banquet and who said this he it is who has slain my son these are the kind of sentiments about the gods which will arouse our anger and he who utters them shall be refused to chorus neither shall we allow teachers to make use of them in the instruction of the
young meaning as we do that our Guardians as far as men can be should be true worshipers of the Gods and like them I entirely agree he said in these principles and promise to make them my laws book three such then I said are our principles of theology some Tales are to be told and others are not to be told to our disciples from their youth upwards if we mean them to honor the gods and their parents and to Value friendship with one another yes and I think that our principles are right he said but
if they are to be courageous must they not learn other lessons besides these and lessons of such a kind as we'll take away the fear of death can any man be courageous who has the fear of death in him certainly not he said and can he be Fearless of death or will he choose death in battle rather than defeat in slavery who believes the world below to be real and terrible impossible then we must assume a control over the narrators of this class of tales as well as over the others and beg them not simply
to revile but rather to commend the world below intimating to them that their descriptions are untrue and will do harm to our future Warriors that will be our duty he said then I said we shall have to obliterate men any obnoxious passages beginning with the verses I would rather be a serf on the land of a poor and portionless man than rule over all the dead who have come to naught we must also expunge the verse which tells us how Pluto feared lest the mansion's Grim and squalid which the gods abhor should be seen both
of Mortals and Immortals and again o Heavens verily In The House of Hades there is soul and ghostly form but no mind at all again of tyreseus to him even after death did Persephone Grant mind that he alone should be wise but the other souls are flitting Shades again the soul flying from the limbs had gone to Hades lamenting her fate leaving manhood and youth again and the Soul with shrilling cry passed like smoke beneath the Earth and as bats in Hollow of Mystic Cavern whenever any of them has dropped out of the string and
falls from the rock flies shrilling and cling to one another so did they with shrilling cry hold together as they moved and we must beg Homer and the other poets not to be angry if we strike out these in similar passages not because they are unpoetical or unattractive to the popular ear but because the greater the poetical charm of them the Lesser they meet for the ears of boys and men who are meant to be free and who should fear slavery more than death undoubtedly also we shall have to reject all the terrible and appalling
names which describe the world below cositis and sticks ghosts under the Earth and sapless shades and any similar words of which the very mention causes a shudder to pass through the inmost soul of him who hears them I do not say that these horrible stories may not have a use of some kind but there is a danger that the nerves of our Guardians may be rendered to excitable and effeminate by them there is a real danger he said then we must have no more of them true another and a noble strain must be composed and
sung by us clearly and shall we proceed to get rid of the weepings and wailings of famous men they will go with the rest but shall we be right in getting rid of them reflect our principle is that the good man will not consider death terrible to any other good man who is his comrade yes that is our principle and therefore he will not sorrow for his departed friend as though he had suffered anything terrible he will not such in one as we further maintain is sufficient for himself and his own happiness and therefore is
least in need of other men true he said and for this reason the loss of a son or brother or the deprivation of Fortune is to him of all men least terrible assuredly and therefore he will be least likely to lament and will bear with the greatest Equanimity any Misfortune of this sort which may befall him yes he will feel such a misfortune far less than another then we shall be right in getting rid of the Lamentations of famous men and making them over to women and not even to women who are good for anything
or to Men of A baser Sort that those who are being educated by us to be the Defenders of their country May scorn to do the like that will be very right then we will once more entreat Homer and the other poets not to depict Achilles who is the son of a goddess first lying on his side then on his back and then on his face then starting up and sailing in a frenzy along the shores of the barren sea now taking the ashes in both his hands and pouring them over his head or weeping
and wailing in the various modes which Homer has delineated nor should he describe Priam the Kinsmen of the Gods as praying and beseeching rolling in the dirt calling each man loudly by his name still more earnestly will we beg of him at all events not to introduce the gods lamenting and saying alas my misery alas that I bore the bravest to my sorrow but if he must introduce the gods at any rate let him not dare so completely to misrepresent the greatest of the Gods as to make him say o Heavens with my eyes verily
I Behold a dear friend of mine chased round and round the city and my heart is sorrowful or again woe is me that I am fated to have sarpadon dearest of men to me subdued at the hands of patroclus the son of minowetius for if my sweet adamantis are youth seriously listen to such unworthy representations of the Gods instead of laughing at them as they ought hardly will any of them deem that he himself being but a man can be Dishonored by similar actions neither will he rebuke any inclination which may arise in his mind
to say and do the like and instead of having any shame or self-control he will be always whining and lamenting on slight occasions yes he said that is most true yes I replied but that surely is what ought not to be as the argument has just proved to us and by that proof we must abide until it is disproved by a better it ought not to be neither ought our Guardians to be given to laughter for a fit of laughter which has been indulged to excess almost always produces a violent reaction so I believe then
persons of worth even if only mortal men must not be represented as overcome by laughter and still less must such a representation of the Gods be allowed still less of the Gods as you say he replied then we shall not suffer such an expression to be used about the gods as that of Homer when he describes how inextinguishable laughter arose among the Blessed Gods when they saw Hephaestus bustling about the mansion on your views we must not admit them on My Views if you like to Father them on me that we must not admit them
is certain again truth should be highly valued if as we were saying a lie is useless to the gods and useful only as a medicine to men than the use of such medicines should be restricted to Physicians private individuals have no business with them clearly not he said then if anyone at all is to have the privilege of lying the rulers of the state should be the persons and they in their dealings either with enemies or with their own citizens may be allowed to lie for the public good but nobody else should meddle with anything
of the kind and although the rulers have this privilege for a private man to lie to them in return is to be deemed a more heinous fault than for the patient or the pupil of a gymnasium not to speak the truth about his own bodily illnesses to The Physician or to the trainer or for a sailor not to tell the captain what is happening about the ship and the rest of the crew and how things are going with himself or his fellow say trailers most true he said if then the ruler catches anybody beside himself
lying in the state any of the Craftsmen whether he be priest or physician or Carpenter he will punish him for introducing a practice which is equally subversive and destructive of ship or state most certainly he said if our idea of the state is ever carried out in the next place our youth must be temperate certainly are not the chief elements of temperance speaking generally obedience to commanders and self-control and sensual Pleasures true then we shall approve such language as that of diomedian Homer friend sit still and obey my word and the verses which follow the
Greeks marched breathing prowess in silent awe of their leaders and other Sentiments of the same kind we shall what of this line oh heavy with wine who has the eyes of a dog in the heart of a stag and of The Words which follow would you say that these are any similar impertinences which private individuals are supposed to address to their rulers whether in verse or prose are well or ill-spoken they are ill-spoken they may very possibly afford some amusement but they do not conduce to Temperance and therefore they are likely to do harm to
our young men you would agree with me there yes and then again to make the wisest of men say that nothing in his opinion is more glorious than when the tables are full of bread and meat and the cupbearer carries round wine which he draws from the bowl and pours into the cups is it fit or conducive to Temperance for a young man to hear such words or the verse the saddest of Fates is to die and meet Destiny from Hunger what would you say again to the tale of Zeus who while other gods and
men were asleep and he the only person awake lay devising plans but forgot them all in a moment through his lust and was so completely overcome at the sight of here that he would not even go into the Hut but wanted to lie with her on the ground declaring that he had never been in such a state of rapture before even when they first met one another without the knowledge of their parents or that other tale of how Hephaestus because of similar goings-on cast a chain around Aries and Aphrodite indeed he said I am strongly
of opinion that they ought not to hear that sort of thing but any Deeds of endurance which are done or told by famous men these they ought to see and hear as for example what is said in the verses he smote his breast and thus reproached his heart endure my heart far worse hast thou endured certainly he said in the next place we must not let them be receivers of gifts or lovers of money certainly not neither must we sing to them of gifts persuading gods and persuading reverent Kings neither is Phoenix the tutor of
Achilles to be approved or deemed to have given his pupil Good Counsel when he told him that he should take the gifts of the Greeks and assist them but that without a gift he should not lay aside his anger neither will we believe or acknowledge Achilles himself to have been such a lover of money that he took agamemnon's gifts or that when he had received payment He restored the dead body of Hector but that without payment he was unwilling to do so undoubtedly he said these are not sentiments which can be approved loving Homer as
I do I hardly like to say that in attributing these feelings to Achilles or in believing that they are truly attributed to him he is guilty of downright impiety as little can I believe The Narrative of his insolence to Apollo where he says Thou Hast wronged Me O far data most abominable of deities verily I would be even with thee if I had only the power or his insubordination to the river god on Whose Divinity he is ready to lay hands or is offering to the dead patroclus of his own hair which had been previously
dedicated to the other River Gods per chaos and that he actually performed this vow or that he dragged Hector around the tomb of patroclus and slaughtered the captives at the pyre of all this I cannot believe that he was guilty any more than I can allow our citizens to believe that he the wise chiron's pupil the son of a goddess and of peleus who was the gentlest of men and third in descent from Zeus was so disordered in his wits as to be at one time the slave of two seemingly inconsistent passions meanness not untainted
by avarice combined with overweaning contempt of Gods and Men you are quite right he replied and let us equally refuse to believe or allow to be repeated the tale of Theseus son of Poseidon or of perath house son of Zeus going forth as they did to perpetrate a horrid rape or of any other hero or son of a god daring to do such impious and Dreadful things as they falsely ascribe to them in our day and let us further compel The Poets to declare either that these acts were not done by them or that they
were not the sons of gods both in the same breath they shall not be permitted to affirm we will not have them trying to persuade our youth at the gods are the authors of evil and that heroes are no better than men sentiments which as we were saying are neither Pious nor true for we have already proved that evil cannot come from the Gods assuredly Not and further they are likely to have a bad effect on those who hear them for everybody will begin to excuse his own vices when he is convinced that similar wickednesses
are always being perpetrated by the Kindred of the Gods the relatives of Zeus whose ancestral altar the altar of Zeus is Aloft in air on the peak of Ida and who have the blood of deities yet flowing in their veins and therefore let us put an end to such Tales lest they engender laxity of morals among the Young by all means he replied but now that we are determining what classes of subjects are or are not to be spoken of let us see whether any have been omitted by us the manner in which gods and
demigods and heroes and the world below should be treated has been already laid down very true and what shall we say about men that is clearly the remaining portion of our subject clearly so but we are not in a condition to answer this question at present my friend why not because if I am not mistaken we shall have to say that about men poets and storytellers are guilty of making the gravest misstatements when they tell us that wicked men are often happy and the good miserable and that Injustice is profitable when undetected but the justice
is a man's own loss and another's gain these things we shall forbid them to utter and command them to sing and say the opposite to be sure we shall he replied but if you admit that I am right in this then I shall maintain that you have implied the principle for which we have been all along contending I grant the truth of your inference that such things are or are not to be said about men is a question which we cannot determine until we have discovered what Justice is and how naturally advantageous to the possessor
whether he seemed to be just or not most true he said enough of the subjects of poetry let us now speak of the style and when this has been considered both matter and manner will have been completely treated I do not understand what you mean said adamantis then I must make you understand and perhaps I may be more intelligible if I put the matter in this way you are aware I suppose that all mythology and poetry is a narration of events either past present or to come certainly he replied A narration may be either simple
narration or imitation or a union of the two that again he said I do not quite understand I fear that I must be a ridiculous teacher when I have so much difficulty in making myself apprehended like a bad speaker therefore I will not take the whole of the subject but will break a piece off in illustration of my meaning you know the first lines of The Iliad in which the poet says that crises prayed Agamemnon to release his daughter and that Agamemnon flew into a passion with him whereupon crises failing of his object invoked the
anger of the God against the achaeans now as far as these lines and he prayed all the Greeks but especially the two sons of Atrius the chiefs of the people the poet is speaking in his own person he never leads us to suppose that he is anyone else but in what follows he takes the person of crises and then he does all that he can to make us believe that the speaker is not Homer but the Aged priest himself and in this double form he has cast the entire Narrative of the events which occurred at
Troy and in Ithaca and throughout the Odyssey yes and a narrative it remains both in the speeches which the poet recites from time to time and in the intermediate passages quite true but when the poet speaks in the person of another may we not say that he assimilates his style to that of the person who as he informs you is going to speak certainly and this assimilation of himself to another either by the use of Voice or gesture is the imitation of the person whose character he assumes of course then in this case The Narrative
of the poet may be said to proceed by way of imitation very true or if the poet everywhere appears and never conceals himself then again the imitation is dropped and his poetry becomes simple narration however in order that I may make my meaning quite clear and that you may no more say I don't understand I will show how the change might be affected if Homer had said the priest came having his daughter's Ransom in his hands supplicating the achaeans and above all the kings and then if instead of speaking in the person of crises he
had continued in his own person the words would have been not imitation but simple narration The Passage would have run as follows I am no poet and therefore I dropped the meter the priest came and prayed the Gods on behalf of the Greeks that they might capture Troy and return safely home but begged that they would give him back his daughter and take the ransom which he brought and respect the god thus he spoke and the other Greeks revered the priest and ascented but Agamemnon was Roth and made him depart and not come again lest
the staff and chaplets of the god should be of no avail to him the daughter of crises should not be released he said she should grow old with him in Argos and then he told him to go away and not to provoke him if he intended to get home unscathed and the old man went away in fear and silence and when he had left the camp he called upon Apollo by his many names reminding him of everything which he had done pleasing to him whether in building his temples or in offering sacrifice and praying that
his Good Deeds might be returned to him and that the achaeans might expiate his Tears by the arrows of the god and so on in this way the whole becomes simple narrative I understand he said or you may suppose the opposite case that the intermediate passages are omitted and the dialogue only left that also he said I understand you mean for example as in tragedy you have conceived my meaning perfectly and if I mistake not what you failed to apprehend before is now made clear to you that poetry and mythology are in some cases wholly
imitative instances of this are supplied by tragedy and comedy there is likewise the opposite style in which the poet is the only speaker of this the ditherram affords the best example and the combination of both is found in Epic and in several other styles of poetry do I take you with me yes he said I see now what you meant I will ask you to remember also what I began by saying that we had done with the subject and might proceed to the style yes I remember in saying this I intended to imply that we
must come to an understanding about the mimetic art whether The Poets in narrating their stories are to be allowed by us to imitate and if so whether in whole or in part and if the latter in what parts or should all imitation be prohibited you mean I suspect to ask whether tragedy and comedy shall be admitted into our state yes I said but there may be more than this in question I really do not know as yet but whether the argument May blow there we go and go we will he said then adamantis let me
ask you whether our Guardians are to be imitators or rather has not this question been decided by the rule already laid down that one man can only do one thing well and not many and that if he attempt many he will altogether fail of gaining much reputation in any certainly and this is equally true of imitation no one man can imitate many things as well as he would imitate a single one he cannot then the same person will hardly be able to play a serious part in life and at the same time to be an
imitator and imitate many other parts as well for even when two species of imitation are nearly Allied the same persons cannot succeed in both as for example the writers of tragedy and comedy did you not just now call them imitations yes I did and you are right in thinking that the same persons cannot succeed in both any more than they can be rhapsodists and actors at once true neither are comic and tragic actors the same yet all these things are but imitations they are so and human nature at emantis appears to have been coined into
yet smaller pieces and to be as incapable of imitating many things well as of Performing well the actions of which the imitations are copies quite true he replied if then we adhere to our original notion and bear in mind that our Guardians setting aside every other business are to dedicate themselves wholly to the maintenance of freedom in the state making this their craft and engaging in no work which does not bear on this end they ought not to practice or imitate anything else if they imitate it all they should imitate from youth upward only those
characters which are suitable to their profession the courageous temperate holy free and the like but they should not depict or be skillful at imitating any kind of illiberality or baseness lest from imitation they should come to be what they imitate did you never observe how imitations beginning in early Youth and continuing far into life at length grow into habits and become a second nature affecting body voice and mind yes certainly he said then I said we will not allow those for whom we Professor care and of whom we say that they are to be good
men to imitate a woman whether young or old quarreling with her husband or striving and wanting Against The Gods in conceit of her happiness or when she is in Affliction or sorrow or weeping and certainly not one who is in sickness love or labor very right he said neither must they represent slaves male or female performing the offices of slaves they must not and surely not bad men whether cowards or any others who do the reverse of what we have just been prescribing who scold or mock or revile one another in drink or out of
drink or who in any other manner sin against themselves and their neighbors in word or deed as the manner of such is neither should they be trained to imitate the action or speech of men or women who are mad or bad for madness like Vice is to be known but not to be practiced or imitated very true he replied neither may they imitate Smiths or other artificers or oarsmen or bosons or the like how can they he said when they are not allowed to apply their minds to the callings of any of these nor may
they imitate the naying of Horses The bellowing of bulls the murmur of rivers and role of the ocean Thunder and all that sort of thing nay he said if Madness be forbidden neither may they copy the behavior of Mad Men you mean I said if I understand you were right that there is one sort of narrative style which may be employed by a truly good man when he has anything to say and that another sort will be used by a man of an opposite character and education and which are these two sorts he asked suppose
I answered that a just and good man in the course of a narration comes on some saying or action of another good man I should imagine that he will like to personate him and will not be ashamed of this sort of imitation he will be most ready to play the part of the good man when he is acting firmly and wisely in a less degree when he is overtaken by illness or love or drink or as met with any other disaster but when he comes to a character which is Unworthy of him he will not
make a study of that he will disdain such a person and will assume his likeness if at all for a moment only when he's performing some good action at other times he will be ashamed to play a part which he has never practiced nor will he like to fashion and frame himself after the baser models he feels the employment of such an art unless ingest to be beneath him and his mind revolts at it so I should expect he replied then he will adopt a mode of narration such as we have Illustrated out of Homer
that is to say his style will be both imitative and narrative but there will be very little of the former and a great deal of the latter do you agree certainly he said that is the model which such a speaker must necessarily take but there is another sort of character who will narrate anything and the worse he is the more unscrupulous he will be nothing will be too bad for him and he will be ready to imitate anything not as a joke but in right good Earnest and before a large company as I was just
now saying he will attempt to represent the role of Thunder the noise of wind and hail or the creaking of wheels and pulleys and the various sounds of flutes pipes trumpets and all sorts of instruments he will bark like a dog bleat like a sheep or crow like a his entire art will consist in Imitation of voice and gesture and there will be very little narration that he said will be his mode of speaking these then are the two kinds of style yes and you would agree with me in saying that one of them is
simple and has but slight changes and if the Harmony and Rhythm are also chosen for their Simplicity the result is that the speaker if he speaks correctly is always pretty much the same in style and he will keep within the limits of a single Harmony for the changes are not great and in like manner he will make use of nearly the same Rhythm that is quite true he said whereas the other requires all sorts of harmonies and all sorts of rhythms if the music and the style are to correspond because the style has all sorts
of changes that is also perfectly true he replied and do not the two Styles or the mixture of the two comprehend all poetry and every form of expression in words no one can say anything except in one or other of them or in both together they include all he said and shall we receive into our state all the three Styles or one only of the two unmixed Styles or would you include the mixed I should prefer only to admit the pure imitator of virtue yes I said adamantis but the mixed style is also very charming
and indeed the pantomimic which is the opposite of the one chosen by you is the most popular Style with children and their attendance and with the world in general I do not deny it but I suppose you would argue that such a style is unsuitable to our state in which human nature is not twofold or manifold for one man plays one part only yes quite unsuitable and this is the reason why in our state and in our state only we shall find a Shoemaker to be a Shoemaker and not a pilot also and a husbandman
to be a husbandman and not a dcast also and a soldier a soldier and not a traitor also and the same throughout true he said and therefore when any one of these pantomimic gentlemen who are so clever that they can imitate anything comes to us and makes a proposal to exhibit himself in his poetry we will fall down and worship him as a sweet and holy and wonderful being but we must also inform him that in our state such as he are not permitted to exist the law will not allow them and so when we
have anointed him with myrrh and set a Garland of wool upon his head we shall send him away to another city for we mean to employ for our Soul's Health the rougher and severe a poet or Storyteller who will imitate the style of The Virtuous only and will follow those models which we prescribed at first when we began the education of our soldiers we certainly will he said if we have the power then now my friend I said that part of music or literary education which relates to the story or myth may be considered to
be finished for the matter and manner have both been discussed I think so too he said next in order will follow Melody and song that is obvious everyone can see already what we ought to say about them if we are to be consistent with ourselves I fear said glocken laughing that the word everyone hardly includes me for I cannot at the moment say what they should be though I may guess at any rate you can tell that a song or ode has three parts the words the melody and the Rhythm that degree of knowledge I
may presuppose yes he said so much as that you may and as for the words there will surely be no difference between Words which are and which are not set to music both will conform to the same laws and these have been already determined by us yes and the melody and Rhythm will depend upon the words certainly we were saying when we spoke of the subject matter that we had no need of lamentation and strains of Sorrow true and which are the harmonies expressive of Sorrow you are Musical and can tell me the harmonies which
you mean are the mixed or tenor lydian and the full-toned or based lydian and such like these then I said must be banished even to women who have a character to maintain they are of no use and much less to men certainly in the next place drunkenness and softness and indolence are utterly Unbecoming the character of our Guardians utterly Unbecoming and which are the soft or drinking harmonies the ionian he replied and the lydian they are termed relaxed well and are these of any military use quite the reverse he replied and if so the Dorian
and the phrygian are the only ones which you have left I answered of the harmonies I know nothing but I want to have one war like to sound the note or accent which a brave man utters in the hour of danger and Stern resolve or when his cause is failing and he is going to wounds or death or is overtaken by some other evil and at every such crisis meets the blows of Fortune with firm step and a determination to endure and another to be used by him in times of Peace and Freedom of action
when there is no pressure of necessity and he is seeking to persuade God by prayer or Man by instruction and admonition or on the other hand when he is expressing his willingness to yield to persuasion or in treaty or admonition and which represents him when by prudent conduct he has attained his end not carried away by his success but acting moderately and wisely under the circumstances and acquiescing in the event these two harmonies I ask you to leave the strain of necessity and the strain of Freedom the strain of the unfortunate and the strain of
the fortunate the strain of Courage and the strain of temperance these I say leave and these he replied are the Dorian and phrygian harmonies of which I was just now speaking then I said if these and these only are to be used in our songs and Melodies we shall not want multiplicity of notes or a pan harmonic scale I suppose not then we shall not maintain the artificers of liars with three corners and complex scales or the makers of any other many stringed curiously harmonized instruments certainly not but what do you say to flute makers
and flute players would you admit them into our state when you reflect that in this composite use of Harmony the flute is worse than all the stringed instruments put together even the panharmonic music is only an imitation of the flute clearly not they remain then only the liar and the harp for use in the city and the Shepherds may have a pipe in the country that is surely the conclusion to be drawn from the argument the preferring of Apollo and his instruments to marseillus and his instruments is not at all strange I said not at
all he replied and so by the dog of Egypt we have been unconsciously purging the state which not long ago we termed luxurious and we have done wisely he replied then let us now finish the purgation I said next in order to harmonies rhythms will naturally follow and they should be subject to the same rules for we ought not to seek out complex systems of meter or meters of every kind but rather to discover what rhythms are the expressions of a courageous and harmonious life and when we have found them we shall adapt the foot
and the melody to words having a like Spirit not the words to the foot and Melody to say what these rhythms are will be your duty you must teach me them as you have already taught me the harmonies but indeed he replied I cannot tell you I only know that there are some three principles of Rhythm out of which metrical systems are framed just as in sounds there are four notes that is the four notes of the tetrachord out of which all the harmonies are composed that is an observation which I have made but of
what sort of lives they are severally the imitations I am unable to say then I said we must take Damon into our councils and he will tell us what rhythms are expressive of meanness or insolence or Fury or other unworthiness and want her to be reserved for the expression of opposite feelings and I think that I have an indistinct recollection of his mentioning a complex critic Rhythm also a dactylic or heroic and he arranged them in some manner which I do not quite understand making the rhythms equal in the rise and fall of the foot
long and short alternating and unless I am mistaken he spoke of an iambic as well as of a trochaic rhythm and assigned to them short and long quantities also in some cases he appeared to praise or censure the movement of the foot quite as much as the Rhythm or perhaps a combination of the two for I am not certain what he meant these matters however as I was saying had better be referred to Damon himself for the analysis of the subject would be difficult you know Socrates expresses himself carelessly in accordance with his assumed ignorance
of the details of the subject in the first part of the sentence he appears to be speaking of pionic rhythms which are in the ratio of three two in the second part of dactylic and anaplastic rhythms which are in the ratio of 1 1. in the last Clause of iambic and trokaic rhythms which are in the ratio of 1 2 or 2 1. rather so I should say but there is no difficulty in seeing that Grace or the absence of Grace is an effect of good or bad Rhythm none at all and also that good
and bad Rhythm naturally assimilate to a good and bad style and that Harmony and Discord in like manner follows style for our principle is that Rhythm and Harmony are regulated by the words and not the words by them just so he said they should follow the words and will not the words and the character of the style depend on The Temper of the Soul yes and everything else on the style yes then beauty of style and Harmony and Grace and good Rhythm depend on Simplicity I mean the true Simplicity of a rightly and nobly ordered
mind and character not that other Simplicity which is only a euphemism for Folly very true he replied and if our youth are to do their work in life must they not make these Graces and harmonies their Perpetual aim they must and surely the art of the painter and every other creative and constructive art are full of them weaving embroidery architecture and every kind of manufacture also nature animal and vegetable in all of them there is Grace or the absence of Grace and ugliness and Discord and inharmonious motion are nearly Allied to Ill words and Ill
nature as Grace and Harmony are the twin sisters of goodness and virtue and bear their likeness that that is quite true he said but shall our superintendents go no further and are The Poets only to be required by us to express the image of the good in their works on pain if they do anything else of expulsion from our state or is the same control to be extended to other artists and are they also to be prohibited from exhibiting the opposite forms of vice and intemperance and meanness and indecency in sculpture and building and the
other creative arts and is he who cannot conform to this rule of ours to be prevented from practicing his art in our state lest the taste of our citizens be corrupted by him we would not have our Guardians grow up amid images of moral deformity as in some noxious pasture and their browse and feed upon many a baneful herb and flower day by day little by little until they silently gather a festering mass of corruption in their own soul let our artists rather be those who are gifted to discern the true nature of the beautiful
and graceful then will our youth dwell in a Land of Health amid Fair sights and sounds and receive the good in everything and Beauty the affluence of fair works shall flow into the eye and ear like a health-giving breeze from a purer region and insensibly draw the soul from earliest years into lightness and sympathy with the beauty of reason there can be no nobler training than that he replied and therefore I said glaucon musical training is a more potent instrument than any other because Rhythm and Harmony find their way into the inward places of the
Soul on which they mightily fasten imparting Grace and making the soul of him who is rightly educated graceful or of him who is ill-educated ungraceful and also because he who has received this true education of the inner being will most shrewdly perceive omissions or faults in art and nature and with a true taste while he praises and rejoices over in receives into his soul the good and becomes Noble and good he will justly blame and hate the bad now in the days of his youth even before he is able to know the reason why and
when reason comes he will recognize and salute the friend with whom his education has made him long familiar yes he said I quite agree with you in thinking that our youth should be trained in music and on the grounds which you mention just as in learning to read I said we were satisfied when we knew the letters of the alphabet which are very few in all their recurring sizes and combinations not sliding them is unimportant whether they occupy a space large or small but everywhere eager to make them out and not thinking ourselves perfect in
the art of reading until we recognize them wherever they are found true or as we recognize the reflection of letters in the water or in a mirror only when we know the letters themselves the same art and study giving us the knowledge of both exactly even so as I maintain neither we nor our Guardians whom we have to educate can never become musical until we and they know the essential forms of temperance courage liberality magnificence and their Kindred as well as the contrary forms in all their combinations and can recognize them in their images wherever
they are found not sliding them either in small things or great but believing them all to be within the sphere of one art and study most assuredly and when a beautiful soul harmonizes with a beautiful form and the two are cast in one mold that will be the fairest of sights to him who has an eye to see it the fairest indeed and the fairest is also the loveliest that may be assumed and the man who has the Spirit of Harmony will be most in love with the loveliest but he will not love him who
is of an inharmonious soul that is true he replied if the deficiency be in his soul but if there be any merely bodily defect in another he will be patient of it and will love all the same I perceive I said that you have or have had experiences of this sort and I agree but let me ask you another question has excess of pleasure any Affinity to Temperance how can that be he replied pleasure deprives a man of the use of his faculties quite as much as pain or any Affinity to Virtue in general none
whatever any Affinity to wantedness and intemperance yes the greatest and is there any greater or Keener pleasure than that of sensual love no nor a matter whereas true love is a love of beauty and Order temperate and harmonious quite true he said then no intemperance or Madness should be allowed to approach true love certainly not then mad or intemperate pleasure must never be allowed to come near the lover and his beloved neither of them can have any part in it if their love is of the right sort no indeed Socrates it must never come near
them come near then I suppose that in the city which we are founding you would make a law to the effect that a friend should use no other familiarity to his love than a father would use to his son and then only for a noble purpose and he must first have the others consent and this rule is to limit him in all his intercourse and he is never to be seen going further or if he exceeds he is to be deemed guilty of coarseness and bad taste I quite agree he said thus much of Music
which makes a Fair ending for what should be the end of Music if not the love of beauty I agree he said after music comes gymnastic in which our youth are next to be trained certainly gymnastic as well as music should begin in early years the training in it should be careful and should continue through life now my belief is and this is a matter upon which I should like to have your opinion in confirmation of my own but my own belief is not that the good body by any bodily Excellence improves the soul but
on the contrary that the goods by her own Excellence improves the body as far as this may be possible what do you say yes I agree then to the mind when adequately trained we shall be right in handing over the more particular care of the body and in order to avoid prolicity we will now only give the general outlines of the subject very good that they must abstain from intoxication has been already remarked by us for of all persons a guardian should be the last to get drunk and not know where in the world he
is yes he said that a guardian should require another Guardian to take care of him is ridiculous indeed but next what shall we say of their food for the men are in training for the great contest of all are they not yes he said and will the habit of body of our ordinary athletes be suited to them why not I am afraid I said that a habit of body such as they have is but a sleepy sort of thing and rather perilous to health do you not observe that these athletes sleep away their lives and
are liable to most dangerous illnesses if they depart in ever so slight a degree from their customary regimen yes I do then I said a finer sort of training will be required for our Warrior athletes who are to be like wakeful dogs and to see and hear with the utmost keenness amid the many changes of water and also a food of summer heat and winter cold which they will have to endure when on a campaign they must not be liable to break down in health that is my view the really excellent gymnastic is twin sister
of that simple music which we were just now describing how so why I conceive that there is a gymnastic which like our music is simple and good and especially the military gymnastic what do you mean my meaning may be learned from Homer he you know feeds his Heroes at their feasts when they are campaigning on soldiers Fair they have no fish although they are on the shores of the hellespond and they are not allowed boiled Meats but only roast which is the food most convenient for soldiers requiring only that they should light a fire and
not involving the trouble of caring about pots and pans true and I can hardly be mistaken in saying that sweet sauces are nowhere mentioned in Homer in prescribing them however he is not singular all professional athletes are well aware that a man who is to be in good condition should take nothing of the kind yes he said and knowing this they are quite right in not taking them then you would not approve of Syracuse and dinners and the refinements of Sicilian cookery I think not nor if a man is to be in condition would you
allow him to have a Corinthian girl as his fair friend certainly not neither would you approve of the Delicacies as they are thought of Athenian confectionary certainly not all such feeding and living may be rightly compared by us to Melody and song composed in the panharmonic style and in all the rhythms exactly their complexity and gendered license and hear disease whereas Simplicity in music was the parent of temperance in the soul and simplicity in gymnastic of Health in the body most true he said but when intemperance and diseases multiply in a state Halls of justice
and Medicine are always being opened and the Arts of the doctor and the lawyer give themselves heirs finding how Keen is the interest which not only the slaves but the Freeman of a city take about them of course and yet what greater proof can there be of a bad and disgraceful state of education than this that not only Artisans and the meaner sort of people need the skill of first-rate Physicians and judges but also those who would profess to have had a liberal education is it not disgraceful and a great sign of want of good
breeding that a man should have to go abroad for his law and physic because he has none of his own at home and must therefore surrender himself into the hands of other men whom he makes Lords and judges over him of all things he said the most disgraceful would you say most I replied when you consider that there is a further stage of the evil in which a man is not only a lifelong litigant passing all his days in the courts either as plaintiff or defendant but is actually led by his bad taste to Pride
himself on his litigiousness he imagines that he is a master in dishonesty able to take every crooked turn and wriggle into and out of every hole bending like a withy and getting out of the way of justice and all for what in order to gain small points not worth mentioning he not knowing that so to order his life is to be able to do without a napping judge is a far higher and nobler sort of thing is not that still more disgraceful yes he said that is still more disgraceful well I said and to require
the help of medicine not when a wound has to be cured or on occasion of an epidemic but just because by indolence and a habit of life such as we have been describing men fill themselves with Waters and winds as if their bodies were a marsh compelling the ingenious sons of asclepius to find more names for diseases such as flatulence and Qatar is not this too a disgrace yes he said they do certainly give very strange and newfangled names to diseases you yes I said and I do not believe that there were any such diseases
in the days of asclepius and this I infer from the circumstance that the hero euripolis after he has been wounded in Homer drinks a positive pramny and wine will be sprinkled with barley meal and grated cheese which are certainly inflammatory and yet the sons of asclepius who were at the Trojan War do not blame the damsel who gives him the drink or rebuke patroclus who is treating his case well he said that was surely an extraordinary drink to be given to a person in his condition not so extraordinary I replied if you bear in mind
that in former days as is commonly said before the time of herodicus the Guild of asclepius did not practice our present system of medicine which may be said to educate diseases but herodicus being a trainer and himself of a sickly Constitution by a combination of training and doctoring found out a way of torturing first and chiefly himself and secondly the rest of the world how was that he said by the invention of lingering death for he had a mortal disease which he perpetually tended and as recovery was out of the question he passed his entire
life as a valitudinarian he could do nothing but attend upon himself and he was in constant torment whenever he departed in anything from his usual regimen and so dying hard by the help of science he struggled on to old age a rare reward of his skill yes I said a reward which a man might fairly expect who never understood that if asclepius did not instruct his descendants in valatudinarian arts the Omission arose not from ignorance or inexperience of such a branch of Medicine but because he knew that in all well-ordered states every individual has an
occupation to which he must attend and has therefore no leisure to spend in continually being ill this we remark in the case of the Artisan but ludicrously enough do not apply the same rule to people of the Richer sort how do you mean he said I mean this when a carpenter is ill he asks the physician for a Rough and Ready cure an a medic or a purge or a cautery or the knife these are his remedies and if someone prescribes for him a course of dietetics and tells him that he must swathe and swaddle
his head and all that sort of thing he replies at once that he has no time to be ill and that he sees no good in a life which is spent in nursing his disease to the neglect of his customary employment and therefore bidding goodbye to this sort of physician he resumes his ordinary habits and either gets well and lives and does his business or if his Constitution fails he dies and has no more trouble yes he said and a man in his condition of Life ought to use the art of medicine thus far only
has he not I said an occupation and what profit would there be in his life if he were deprived of his occupation quite true he said but with the rich man this is otherwise of him we do not say that he has any special especially appointed work which he must perform if he would live he is generally supposed to have nothing to do then you never heard of the saying of fossilities that as soon as a man has a livelihood he should practice virtue nay he said I think that he had better begin somewhat sooner
let us not have a dispute with him about this I said but rather ask ourselves is the practice of virtue obligatory on the rich man or can he live without it and if obligatory on him then let us raise a further question whether this dieting of disorders which is an impediment to the application of the Mind in carpentering and the mechanical arts does not equally stand in the way of the sentiment of fossilides of that he replied there can be no doubt such excessive care of the body when carried beyond the rules of gymnastic is
most inimical to the practice of virtue yes indeed I replied and equally incompatible with the management of a house and army or an office of State and what is most important of all irreconcilable with any kind of study or thought or self-reflection there is a constant suspicion that headache and giddiness are to be ascribed to philosophy and hence all practicing or making trial of virtue in the higher sense is absolutely stopped for a man is always fancying that he is being made ill and is in constant anxiety about the state of his body yes likely
enough and therefore our politic asclepius may be supposed to have exhibited the power of His art only to persons who being generally of healthy Constitution and habits of Life had a definite ailment such as these he cured by purges and operations and bade them live as usual herein Consulting the interests of the state but bodies which disease had penetrated through and through he would not have attempted to cure by gradual processes of evacuation and infusion he did not want to lengthen out good for nothing lives or to have weak fathers be getting weaker Sons if
a man was not able to live in the ordinary way he had no business to cure him for such a cure would have been of no use either to himself or to the state then he said you regard asclepius as a Statesman clearly and his character is further illustrated by his sons note that they were heroes in the days of old and practiced the medicines of which I am speaking at the siege of Troy you will remember how when pandaris wounded Menelaus they sucked the blood out of the wound and sprinkled soothing remedies but they
never prescribed what the patient was afterwards to eat or drink in the case of Menelaus any more than in the case of uripolis the remedies as they conceived were enough to heal any man who before he was wounded was healthy and regular in his habits and even though he did happen to drink a positive primary and wine he might get well all the same but they would have nothing to do with unhealthy and intemperate subjects whose lives were of no use either to themselves or others the art of medicine was not designed for their good
and though they were as rich as Midas the sons of asclepius would have declined to attend them they were very acute persons those sons of asclepius naturally so I replied nevertheless the tragedians in pindar disobeying our behests although they acknowledged that asclepius was the son of Apollo say also that he was bribed into healing a rich man who was at the point of death and for this reason he was struck by lightning but we in accordance with the principle already affirmed by us will not believe them when they tell us both if he was the
son of a God we maintain that he was not avaricious or if he was avaricious he was not the son of a God all that Socrates is excellent but I should like to put a question to you ought there not to be good physicians in a state and are not the best those who have treated the greatest number of constitutions good and bad and are not the best judges in like manner those who are acquainted with all sorts of moral Natures yes I said I too would have good judges and good Physicians but do you
know whom I think good will you tell me I will if I can let me however note that in the same question you join two things which are not the same how so he asked why I said you join Physicians and judges now the most skillful Physicians are those who from their youth upwards have combined with the knowledge of their art the greatest experience of disease they had better not be robust in health and should have had all manner of diseases in their own persons for the body as I conceive is not the instrument with
which they cure the body in that case we could not allow them ever to be or to have been sickly but they cure the body with the mind and the mind which has become and is sick can cure nothing that is very true he said but with the judge it is otherwise since he governs Mind by mind he ought not therefore to have been trained among vicious minds and to have associated with them from youth upwards and who have gone through the whole calendar of crime only in order that he may quickly infer the crimes
of others as he might their bodily diseases from his own self-consciousness The Honorable mind which is to form a healthy judgment should have had no experience or contamination of evil habits when young and this is the reason why in youth good men often appear to be simple and are easily practiced upon by the dishonest because they have no examples of what evil is in their own Souls yes he said they are far too apt to be deceived therefore I said the judge should not be young he should have learned to know evil not from his
own soul but from late and long observation of the nature of evil in others knowledge should be his guide not personal experience yes he said that is the ideal of a judge yes I replied and he will be a good man which is my answer to your question for he is good who has a good soul but the cunning and suspicious nature of which we spoke he who has committed many crimes and fancies himself to be a master in wickedness when he is amongst his fellows is wonderful in the precautions which he takes because he
judges of them by himself but when he gets into the company of men of virtue who have the experience of age he appears to be a fool again owing to his unseasonable suspicions he cannot recognize an honest man because he has no pattern of honesty in himself at the same time as the bad are more numerous than the good and he meets with them oftener he thinks himself and is by others thought to be rather wise than foolish most true he said than the good and wise judge whom we are seeking is not this man
but the other for vice cannot know virtue too but a virtuous nature educated by time will acquire a knowledge both of virtue and vice The Virtuous and not the vicious man has wisdom in my opinion and in mine also this is the sort of medicine and this is the sort of law which you will sanction in your state they will minister to better Natures giving Health both of soul and of body but those who are diseased in their bodies they will leave to die and the corrupt and incurable Souls they will put an end to
themselves that is clearly the best thing both for the patients and for the state and thus our youth having been educated only in that simple music which as we said inspires Temperance will be reluctant to go to law clearly and the musician who keeping to the same track is content to practice the simple gymnastic will have nothing to do with medicine unless in some extreme case that I quite believe the very exercises and tolls which he undergoes are intended to stimulate the spirited element of his nature and not to increase his strength he will not
like common athletes use exercise and regimen to develop his muscles very right he said neither are the two Arts of music and Gymnastic really designed as often supposed the one for the training of the soul the other for the training of the body what then is the real object of them I believe I said that the teachers of both have in view chiefly the Improvement of the Soul how can that be he asked did you never observe I said the effect on the Mind itself of exclusive Devotion to gymnastic or the opposite effect of an
exclusive Devotion to music in what way shown he said the one producing a temper of hardness and ferocity the other of softness and effeminacy I replied yes he said I am quite aware that the mere athlete becomes too much of a Savage and that the mere musician is melted and softened beyond what is good for him yet surely I said this ferocity only comes from Spirit which if rightly educated would give courage but if too much intensified is liable to become hard and brutal that I quite think on the other hand the philosopher will have
the quality of gentleness and this also went too much indulged will turn to softness but if educated rightly will be gentle and moderate true and in our opinion the Guardians ought to have both these qualities assuredly and both should be in harmony Beyond question and the harmonious soul is both temperate and courageous yes and the inharmonius is cowardly and boorish very true and when a man allows music to play upon him and to pour into his soul through the funnel of his ears those sweet and soft and Melancholy Heirs of which we were just now
speaking and his whole life is passed in warbling and the Delights of song in the first stage of the process the passion or Spirit which is in him is tempered like iron and made useful instead of brittle and useless but if he carries on the softening and soothing process in the next stage he begins to melt and waste until he has wasted away his spirit and cut out the sinews of his soul and he becomes a feeble Warrior very true if the element of spirit is naturally weak in him the change is speedily accomplished but
if you have a good deal then the power of music weakening the spirit renders him excitable on the least provocation he Flames up at once and is speedily extinguished instead of having Spirit he grows irritable and passionate and is quite impracticable exactly and so in gymnastics if a man takes violent exercise and is a great feeder and the reverse of a great student of music and philosophy at first the high condition of his body fills him with pride and spirit and he becomes twice the man that he was certainly and what happens if you do
nothing else and holds no converse with the muses does not even that intelligence which there may be in him having no taste of any sort of learning or inquiry or thought or culture grow feeble and dull and blind his mind never waking up or receiving nourishment and his sense is not being purged of their Mists true he said and he ends by becoming a hater of philosophy uncivilized never using the weapon of persuasion he is like a wild beast all violence and fierceness and knows no other way of dealing and he lives in all ignorance
and evil conditions and has no sense of propriety and Grace that is quite true he said and as there are two principles of human nature one the spirited and the other the philosophical some God as I should say has given mankind two Arts answering to them and only indirectly to the soul and Body in order that these two principles like the strings of an instrument may be relaxed or drawn tighter until they are duly harmonized that appears to be the intention and he who mingles music with gymnastic in the fairest proportions and best attempters them
to the soul may be rightly called the true musician and harmonist in a far higher sense than the tuner of the strings you are quite right Socrates and such a presiding genius will be always required in our state if the government is to last yes he will be absolutely necessary such then are our principles of nurture and education where would be the use of going into further details about the dances of our citizens or about their hunting and coursing their gymnastic and equestrian contests for these all follow the general principle and having found that we
shall have no difficulty in discovering them I dare say that there will be no difficulty very good I said then what is the next question must we not ask who are to be rulers and whose subjects certainly there can be no doubt that the Elder must rule the younger clearly and that the best of these must rule that is also clear now are not the best husband men those who are most devoted to husbandry yes and as we are to have the best of Guardians for our city must they not be those who have most
the character of Guardians yes and to this end they ought to be wise and efficient and to have a special care of the state true and a man will be most likely to care about that which he loves to be sure and he will be most likely to love that which he regards as having the same interests with himself and that of which the good or evil Fortune is supposed by him at any time most to affect his own very true he replied then there must be a selection let us note among the Guardians those
who in their whole life show the greatest eagerness to do what is for the good of their country and the greatest repugnance to do what is against her interests those are the right men and they will have to be watched at every age in order that we may see whether they preserve their resolution and never Under the Influence either of force or enchantment forget or cast off their sense of Duty to the state how cast off he said I will explain to you I replied a resolution may go out of a man's mind either with
his will or against his will with his will when he gets rid of a falsehood and learns better against his will whenever he is deprived of a truth I understand he said the Willing loss of a resolution the meaning of the unwilling I have yet to learn why I said do you not see that men are unwillingly deprived of good and willingly of evil is not to have lost the truth and evil and to possess the truth of good and you would agree that to conceive things as they are is to possess the truth yes
he replied I agree with you in thinking that mankind are deprived of Truth against their will and is not this involuntary deprivation caused either by theft or force or enchantment still he replied I do not understand you I fear that I must have been talking Darkly like the tragedians I only mean that some men are changed by persuasion and that others forget argument steals away the hearts of one class and time of the other and this I call theft now you understand me yes those again who are forced are those whom the violence of some
pain or grief compels to change their opinion I understand he said and you are quite right and you would also acknowledge that the enchanted are those who change their minds either under the softer influence of pleasure or the Sterner influence of fear yes he said everything that deceives may be said to enchant therefore as I was just now saying we must inquire who are the best guardians of their own conviction that what they think the interest of the state is to be the rule of their lives we must watch them from their youth upwards and
make them perform actions in which they are most likely to forget or to be deceived and he who remembers and is not deceived is to be selected and he who fails in the trial is to be rejected that will be the way yes and there should also be toils and pains and conflicts prescribed for them in which they will be made to give further proof of the same qualities very right he replied and then I said we must try them with enchantments that is the third sort of test and see what will be their behavior
like those who take Cults amid noise and tumult to see if they are of a timid nature so must we take our youth amid Terrors of some kind and again pass them into pleasures and prove them more thoroughly than gold is proved in the furnace that we may discover whether they are armed against all enchantments and of a noble bearing always good guardians of themselves and of the music which they have learned and retaining under all circumstances are rhythmical and harmonious nature such as will be most serviceable to the individual and to the state and
he who at every age as boy and youth and immature life has come out of the trial Victorious and pure shall be appointed a ruler and guardian of the state he shall be honored in life and death and shall receive sepulture and other Memorials of honor the greatest that we have to give but him who fails we must reject I am inclined to think that this is the sort of way in which our rulers and Guardians should be chosen and appointed I speak generally and not with any pretension to exactness and speaking generally I agree
with you he said and perhaps the word Guardian in the fullest sense ought to be applied to this higher class only who preserve us against foreign enemies and maintain peace among our citizens at home that the one may not have the will or the others the power to harm us the young men whom we before called Guardians may be more properly designated auxiliaries and supporters of the principles of the rulers I agree with you he said how then may we devise one of those needful falsehoods of which we lately spoke just one Royal lie which
may deceive the rulers if that be possible and at any rate the rest of the city what sort of lie he said nothing new I replied only an old Phoenician tale laws of what has often occurred before now in other places as The Poets say and have made the world believe though not in our time and I do not know whether such an event could ever happen again or could now even be made probable if it did how your words seem to hesitate on your lips you will not wonder I replied at my hesitation when
you have heard speak he said and fear not well then I will speak although I really know not how to look you in the face or in what words to utter the audacious fiction which I propose to communicate gradually first to the rulers then to the soldiers and lastly to the people they are to be told that their youth was a dream and the Education and Training which they received from us an appearance only in reality during all that time they were being formed and fed in the womb of the Earth where they themselves in
their arms and the pertinances were manufactured when they were completed the Earth their mother sent them up and so their country being their mother and also their nurse they are bound to advise for her good and to defend her against attacks and her citizens they are to regard as children of the earth and their own Brothers you had good reason he said to be ashamed of the LIE which you were going to tell true I replied but there is more coming I've only told you half citizens we shall say to them in our tale you
are brothers yet God has framed you differently some of you have the power of command and in the composition of these he has mingled gold wherefore also they have the greatest honor others he is made of silver to be auxiliaries others again who are to be husband men and Craftsmen he is composed of brass and iron and the species will generally be preserved in the children but as all are of the same original stock a golden parent will sometimes have a silver Sun or a silver parent a golden sun and God proclaims as a first
principle to the rulers and above all else that there is nothing which they should so anxiously guard or of which they are to be such good Guardians as of the purity of the race they should observe what elements mingle in their offspring for if the son of a golden or silver parent has an admixture of brass and iron then nature orders a transposition of ranks and the eye of the ruler must not be pitiful towards the child because he has to descend in the scale and become a husbandman or Artisan just as there may be
sons of Artisans who having an admixture of gold or silver in them are raised to honor and become guardians or auxiliaries for an oracle says that when a man of brass or iron guards the state it will be destroyed such is the tale is there any possibility of making our citizens believe in it not in the present generation he replied there is no way of accomplishing this but their sons may be made to believe in the tale and their sons sons and posterity after them I see the difficulty I replied yet the fostering of such
a belief will make them care more for the city and for one another enough however of the fiction which may now fly abroad upon the wings of rumor while we arm our earthborn heroes and lead them forth under the command of their rulers let them look round and select a spot once they can best suppress Insurrection if any proof refractory within and also defend themselves against enemies who like wolves may come down on the fold from without there let them encamp and when they have encamped let them sacrifice to the proper gods and prepare their
dwellings just so he said and their dwellings must be such as will shield them against the cold of winter and the heat of Summer I suppose that you mean houses he replied yes I said but they must be the houses of soldiers and not of shopkeepers what is the difference he said that I will endeavor to explain I replied to keep Watchdogs who from want of discipline or hunger or some evil habit or other would turn upon the sheep and worry them and behave not like dogs but wolves would be a foul and monstrous thing
in a shepherd truly monstrous he said and therefore every care must be taken that our auxiliaries being stronger than our citizens may not grow to be too much for them and become Savage tyrants instead of friends and allies yes great care should be taken and would not a really good education furnish the best Safeguard but they are well educated already he replied I cannot be so confident my dear glocken I said I am much more certain that they ought to be and that true education whatever that may be will have the greatest tendency to civilize
and humanize them in their relations to one another and to those who are under their protection very true he replied and not only their education but their habitations and all that belongs to them should be such as will neither impair their virtue as Guardians nor tempt them to Prey Upon the other citizens any man of sins must acknowledge that he must then now let us consider what will be their way of life if they are to realize is our idea of them in the first place none of them should have any property of his own
beyond what is absolutely necessary neither should they have a private house or store closed against anyone who has a mind to enter their Provisions should be only such as are required by trained Warriors who are men of temperance and courage they should agree to receive from the citizens a fixed rate of pay enough to meet the expenses of the Year and no more and they will go to mess and live together like soldiers in a camp gold and silver we will tell them that they have from God the diviner metal is within them and they
have therefore no need of the dross which is current among men and ought not to pollute the Divine by any such Earthly admixture for that commoner metal has been the source of many Unholy Deeds but their own is undefiled and they alone of all the citizens may not touch or handle silver or gold or be under the same roof with them or wear them or drink from them and this will be their salvation and they will be the saviors of the state but should they ever acquire homes or lands or monies of their own they
will become housekeepers and husbandmen instead of Guardians enemies and tyrants instead of allies of the other citizens hating and being hated plotting and being plotted against they will pass their whole life in much greater Terror of internal than of external enemies and the hour of Ruin both to themselves and to the rest of the state will be at hand for all which reasons may we not say that thus shall our state be ordered and that these shall be the regulations appointed by us for Guardians concerning their houses and all other matters yes said glaucon book
four here adamantis interposed a question how would you answer Socrates said he if a person were to say that you are making these people miserable and that they are the cause of their own unhappiness the city in fact belongs to them but they are none the better for it whereas other men acquire lands and build large and handsome houses and have everything handsome about them offering sacrifices to the Gods on their own account and practicing hospitality moreover as you were saying just now they have gold and silver and all that is usual among the favorites
of Fortune but our poor citizens are no better than mercenaries who are quartered in the city and are always mounting guard yes I said and you may add that they are only fed and not paid in addition to their food like other men and therefore they cannot if they would take a journey of pleasure they have no money to spend on a mistress or any other luxurious fancy which as the world goes is thought to be happiness and many other accusations of the same nature might be added but said he let us suppose all this
to be included in the charge you mean to ask I said what will be our answer yes if we proceed along the old path my belief I said is that we shall find the answer and our answer will be that even as they are our Guardians may very likely be the happiest of men but that our aim in founding the state was not the disproportionate happiness of any one class but the greatest happiness of the whole we thought that in a state which is ordered with a view to the good of the whole we should
be most likely to find Justice and in the ill-ordered state Injustice and having found them we might then decide which of the two is the happier at present I take it we are fashioning the Happy State not piecemeal or with a view of making a few happy citizens but as a whole and by and by we will proceed to view the opposite kind of state suppose that we were painting a statue and someone came up to us and said why do you not put the most beautiful colors on the most beautiful parts of the body
the eyes ought to be purple but you have made them black to him we might fairly answer sir you would not surely have us beautify the eyes to such a degree that they are no longer eyes consider rather whether by giving this and the other features their due proportion we make the whole beautiful and so I say to you do not compel us to assign to the Guardians a sort of Happiness which will make them anything but Guardians for we too can clothe our husbandmen in Royal apparel and set crowns of gold on their heads
and bid them till the ground as much as they like and no more our Potters also might be allowed to Repose on couches and feast by the Fireside passing around the wine cup while their wheel is conveniently at hand and working at Pottery only as much as they like in this way we might make every class happy and then as you imagine the whole state would be happy but do not put this idea into our heads for if we listen to you the husbandman will be no longer a husbandman the Potter will cease to be
a Potter and no one will have the character of any distinct class in the state now this is not of much consequence where the corruption of society and pretension to be what you are not is confined to cobblers but when the Guardians of the laws and of the government are only seeming and not real Guardians then see how they turn the state upside down and on the other hand they alone have the power of giving order and happiness to the state we mean our Guardians to be true saviors and not the Destroyers of the state
whereas our opponent is thinking of peasants at a festival who are enjoying a life of revelry not of citizens who are doing their duty to the state but if so we mean different things and he is speaking of something which is not a state and therefore we must consider whether in appointing our Guardians we would look to their greatest happiness individually or whether this principle of happiness does not rather reside in the state as a whole but if the latter be the truth then the Guardians and auxiliaries and all others equally with them must be
compelled or induced to do their own work in the best way and thus the whole state will grow up in a noble order and the several classes will receive the proportion of Happiness which nature assigns to them I think that you are quite right I wonder whether you will agree with another remark which occurs to me what may that be there seem to be two causes of the deterioration of the Arts what are they wealth I said in poverty how do they act the process is as follows when a Potter becomes rich will he think
you any longer take the same pains with his art certainly not he will grow more and more indolent and careless very true and the result will be that he becomes a worse Potter yes he greatly deteriorates but on the other hand if he has no money and cannot provide himself with tools or instruments he will not work equally well himself nor will he teach his sons or apprentices to work equally well certainly not then under the influence either of poverty or of wealth workmen and their work are equally liable to degenerate that is evident here
then is a discovery of new evils I said against which the Guardians will have to watch or they will creep into the city unobserved what evils wealth I said and poverty the one is the parent of luxury and indolence and the other of meanness and viciousness and both of discontent that is very true he replied but still I should like to know Socrates how our city will be able to go to war especially against an enemy who is Rich and Powerful if deprived of the sinews of War there would certainly be a difficulty I replied
in going to war with one such enemy but there is no difficulty where there are two of them how so he asked in the first place I said if we have to fight our side will be trained warriors fighting against an army of rich men that is true he said and do you not suppose Eddie mantis that a single boxer who was perfect in his art would easily be a match for two Stout and well-to-do gentlemen who were not boxers hardly if they came upon him at once what now I said if he were able
to run away and then turn and strike at the one who first came up and supposing he were to do this several times under the heat of a scorching Sun might he not being an expert overturn more than one Stout personage certainly he said there would be nothing wonderful in that and yet rich men probably have a greater superiority in the science and practice of boxing than they have in military qualities likely enough then we may assume that our athletes will be able to fight with two or three times their own number I agree with
you for I think you right and suppose that before engaging our citizens send an embassy to one of the two cities telling them what is the truth silver and gold we neither have nor are permitted to have but you may do you therefore come and help us in war and take the spoils of the other City who on hearing these words would choose to fight against lean wiry dogs rather than with the dogs on their side against fat and tender sheep that is not likely and yet there might be a danger to the poor state
if the wealth of many states were to be gathered into one but how simple of you to use the term State at all of any but our own why so you ought to speak of other states in the plural number not one of them is a city but many cities as they say in the game for indeed any City however small is in fact divided into two one the city of the poor the other of the rich these are at war with one another and in either there are many smaller divisions and you would be
altogether beside the Mark if you treated them all as a single state but if you deal with them as many and give the wealth or power or persons of the one to the others you will always have a great many friends and not many enemies and your state while the wise order which has now been prescribed continues to Prevail in her will be the greatest of States I do not mean to say in reputation or appearance but indeed and truth though she number not more than a thousand Defenders a single state which is her equal
you will hardly find either among Helens or barbarians though many that appear to be as great and many times greater that is most true he said and what I said will be the best limit for our rulers to fix when they are considering the size of the state and the amount of territory which they are to include and Beyond which they will not go what limit would you propose I would allow the state to increase so far as is consistent with unity that I think is the proper limit very good he said here then I
said is another order which will have to be conveyed to our Guardians let our city be accounted neither large nor small but one and self-sufficing and surely said he this is not a very severe order which we impose upon them and the other said I of which we were speaking before is lighter still I mean the duty of degrading The Offspring of the Guardians when inferior and of elevating into the rank of Guardians The Offspring of the lower classes were naturally Superior the intention was that in the case of the citizens generally each individual should
be put to the use for which nature intended him one-to-one work and then every man would do his own business and be one and not many and so the whole city would be one and not many yes he said that is not so difficult the regulations which we are prescribing my good Eddie mantis are not as might be supposed a number of great principles but Trifles all if care be taken as the saying is of the one great thing a thing however which I would rather call not great but sufficient for our purpose what may
that be he asked education I said and nurture if our citizens are well educated and grow into sensible men they will easily see their way through all these as well as other matters which I omit such for example as marriage the possession of women and the procreation of children which will all follow the general principle that friends have all things in common as the proverb says that will be the best way of settling them also I said the state if one started well moves with accumulating Force like a wheel for good nurture and education implant
good constitutions and these good constitutions taking root in a good education improve more and more and this Improvement affects the breed in man as in other animals very possibly he said then to sum up this is the point to which above all the attention of our rulers should be directed that music and Gymnastic be preserved in their original form and no innovation made they must do their utmost to maintain them intact and when anyone says that mankind must regard the newest song which the singers have they will be afraid that he may be praising not
new songs but a new kind of song and this ought not to be praised or conceived to be the meaning of the poet for any musical Innovation is full of danger to the whole state and ought to be prohibited so Damon tells me and I can quite believe him he says that when modes of Music change the fundamental laws of the state always change with them yes said adamantus and you may add my suffrage to demons and your own then I said our Guardians must lay the foundations of their Fortress in music yes he said
the lawlessness of which you speak too easily steals in yes I replied in the form of amusement and at first sight it appears harmless why yes he said and there is no harm were it not that little by little this Spirit of license finding a home imperceptibly penetrates into manners and Customs whence issuing with greater force it invades contracts between man and man and from contracts goes on to laws and constitutions in utter recklessness ending at last Socrates by an overthrow of All rights private as well as public is that true I said that is
my belief he replied then as I was saying our youth should be trained from the first in a stricter system for if amusements become Lawless and the youths themselves become Lawless they can never grow up into well-conducted and virtuous citizens very true he said and when they have made a good beginning in play and by the help of Music have gained the habit of good order then this habit of order in a manner how unlike the Lawless play of the others will accompany them in all their actions and be a principle of growth to them
and if there be any Fallen places in the state will raise them up again very true he said thus educated they will invent for themselves any lesser rules which their predecessors have altogether neglected what do you mean I mean such things as these when the young are to be silent before their Elders how they are to show respect to them by standing and making them sit what honor is due to parents what garments or shoes are to be worn the mode of dressing the hair deportment and manners in general you would agree with me yes
but there is I think small wisdom in legislating about such matters I doubt if it is ever done nor are any precise written enactments about them likely to be lasting impossible it would seem adamantis that the direction in which education starts a man will determine his future life does not like always attract like to be sure until someone rare and Grand result is reached which may be good and may be the reverse of good that is not to be denied and for this reason I said I shall not attempt to legislate further about them naturally
enough he replied well and about the business of the Agora and the ordinary dealings between man and man or again about agreements with Artisans about insult and injury or the commencement of actions and the appointment of juries what would you say there may also arise questions about any impositions and exactions of market and harbor dues which may be required and in general about the regulations of markets police harbors and the like but oh heavens shall we condescend to legislate on any of these particulars I think he said that there is no need to impose laws
about them on Good Men what regulations are necessary they will find out soon enough for themselves yes I said my friend if God will only preserve to them the laws which we have given them and without Divine help said adamantis they will go on forever making and mending their laws and their lives in the hope of attaining perfection you would compare them I said to those invalids who having no self-restraint will not leave off their habits of intemperance exactly yes I said and what a delightful life they lead they are always doctoring and increasing and
complicating their disorders and always fancying that they will be cured by Any nostrum Which anybody advises them to try such cases are very common he said with invalids of this sort yes I replied and the Charming thing is that they deem him their worst enemy who tells them the truth which is simply that unless they give up eating and drinking and wenching and idling neither drug nor cautery nor spell nor amulet nor any other remedy will Avail Charming he replied I see nothing charming and going into a passion with a man who tells you what
is right these gentlemen I said do not seem to be in your good graces assuredly not nor would you praise the behavior of states which act like the men whom I was just now describing for are there not ill-ordered States in which the citizens are forbidden under pain of death to alter the Constitution and yet he who most sweetly courts those who live under this regime and indulges them and fawns upon them and is skillful in anticipating and gratifying their humors is held to be a great and good Statesman do not these states resemble the
persons whom I was describing yes he said the states are as bad as the men and I am very far from praising them but do you not admire I said the coolness and dexterity of these ready Ministers of political corruption yes he said I do but not of all of them for there are some whom the Applause of the multitude has deluded into the belief that they are really Statesmen and these are not much to be admired what do you mean I said you should have more feeling for them when a man cannot measure and
a great many others who cannot measure declare that he is four cubits high can he Help Believing what they say nay he said certainly not in that case well then do not be angry with them for are they not as good as a play trying their hand at paltry reforms such as I was describing they are always fancying that by legislation they will make an end of frauds and contracts and the other rascalities which I was mentioning not knowing that they are in reality cutting off the heads of a Hydra yes he said that is
just what they are doing I conceive I said that the true legislator will not trouble himself with this class of enactments whether concerning laws or the Constitution either in an ill-ordered or in a well-ordered state for in the former they are quite useless and in the latter there will be no difficulty in devising them and many of them will naturally flow out of our previous regulations what then he said is still remaining to us of the work of legislation nothing to us I replied but to Apollo the god of Delphi there Remains The Ordering of
the greatest and noblest and chiefest things of all which are they he said the institution of temples and sacrifices and the entire service of gods demigods and heroes also The Ordering of the repositories of the dead and the rights which have to be observed by him who would propitiate the inhabitants of the world below these are matters of which we are ignorant ourselves and as founders of a city we should be unwise entrusting them to any interpreter but our ancestral deity he is the god who sits in the center on the navel of the earth
and he is The Interpreter of religion to all mankind you are right and we will do as you propose but where amid all this is justice son of Ariston tell me where now that our city has been made habitable light a candle and search and get your brother and Paula Marcus and the rest of our friends to help and let us see where in it we can discover Justice and where Injustice and in what they differ from one another and which of them the man who would be happy should have for his portion whether seen
or unseen by Gods and Men nonsense said glaucon did you not promise to search yourself saying that for you not to help Justice in her need would be an impiety I do not deny that I said so and as you remind me I will be as good as my word but you must join we will he replied well then I hope to make the discovery in this way I mean to begin with the assumption that our state if rightly ordered is perfect that is most certain and being perfect is therefore wise and Valiant and temperate
and just that is likewise clear and whichever of these qualities we find in the state the one which is not found will be the residue very good if there were four things and we were searching for one of them wherever it might be the one sought for might be known to us from the first and there would be no further trouble or we might know the other three first and then the fourth would clearly be the one left very true he said and is not a similar method to be pursued about the virtues which are
also foreign number clearly first among the virtues found in the state wisdom comes into view and in this I detect a certain peculiarity what is that the state which we have been describing is said to be wise as being good in counsel very true and Good Counsel is clearly a kind of knowledge for not by ignorance but by knowledge do men counsel well clearly and the kinds of knowledge in a state are many and diverse of course there is the knowledge of the carpenter but is that the sort of knowledge which gives a city the
title of wise and good in counsel certainly not that would only give a city the reputation of skill in carpentering then a city is not to be called wise because possessing a knowledge which counsels for the best about wooden implements certainly not nor by reason of a knowledge which advises about Brazen pots I said nor as possessing any other similar knowledge not by reason of any of them he said nor yet by reason of a knowledge which cultivates the Earth that would give the city the name of agricultural yes well I said and is there
any knowledge in our recently founded State among any of the citizens which advises not about any particular thing in the state but about the whole and considers how a state can best deal with itself and with other states there certainly is and what is this knowledge and among whom is it found I asked it is the knowledge of the Guardians he replied and is found among those whom we were just now describing as perfect Guardians and what is the name which the city derives from the possession of this sort of knowledge the name of good
in counsel and truly wise and will there be in our city more of these true guardians or more Smiths The Smiths he replied will be far more numerous will not the Guardians be the smallest of all the classes who receive a name from The Profession of some kind of knowledge much the smallest and so by reason of the smallest part or class and of the knowledge which resides in this presiding and ruling part of itself the whole State being thus constituted according to Nature will be wise and this which has the only knowledge worthy to
be called wisdom has been ordained by nature to be of all classes the least most true thus then I said the nature and place in the state of one of the four virtues has somehow or other been discovered and in my humble opinion very satisfactorily discovered he replied again I said there is no difficulty in seeing the nature of courage and in what part that quality resides which gives the name of courageous to the state how do you mean why I said everyone who calls any state courageous or cowardly will be thinking of the part
which fights and goes out to war on the state's behalf no one he replied would ever think of any other the rest of the citizens may be courageous or may be cowardly but their courage or cowardice will not as I conceive have the effect of making the city either the one or the other certainly not the city will be courageous in virtue of a portion of herself which preserves under all circumstances that opinion about the nature of things to be feared and not to be feared in which our legislator educated them and this is what
you term courage I should like to hear what you are saying once more for I do not think that I perfectly understand you I mean that courage is a kind of salvation salvation of what of the opinion respecting things to be feared what they are and of what nature which the law implants through education and I mean by the words under all circumstances to intimate that in pleasure or in pain or under the influence of Desire or fear a man preserves and does not lose this opinion shall I give you an illustration if you please
you know I said that Dyers when they want to die wool for making the true sea purple Begin by selecting their white color first this they prepare and dress with much care and pains in order that the white ground may take the purple Hue in full perfection the dying then proceeds and whatever is died in this manner becomes a fast color and no washing either with lies or without them can take away the bloom but when the ground has not been duly prepared you will have noticed how poor is the look either of purple or
of any other color yes he said I know that they have a washed out and ridiculous appearance then now I said you will understand what our object was in selecting our soldiers and educating them in music and Gymnastic we were contriving influences which would prepare them to take the die of the laws in Perfection and the color of their opinion about dangers and of every other opinion was to be indelibly fixed by their nurture and training not to be washed away by such potent lies as pleasure mightier agent far in washing the soul than any
soda or lie or by sorrow fear and desire the mightiest of all other solvents and this sort of universal saving power of true opinion in Conformity with law about real and false dangers I call and maintain to be courage unless you disagree but I agree he replied for I suppose that you mean to exclude mere uninstructed courage such as that of a wild beast or of a Slave this in your opinion is not the courage which the law ordains and ought to have another name most certainly then I may infer courage to be such as
you describe why yes said I you may and if you add the words of a citizen you will not be far wrong Hereafter if you like we will carry the examination further but at present we are seeking not for courage but Justice and for the purpose of our inquiry we have said enough you are right he replied two virtues remain to be discovered in the state first Temperance and then Justice which is the end of our search very true now can we find Justice without troubling ourselves about temperance I do not know how that can
be accomplished he said nor do I desire that Justice should be brought to light and Temperance lost sight of and therefore I wish that you would do me the favor of considering Temperance first certainly I replied I should not be justified in refusing your request then consider he said yes I replied I will and as far as I can at present C the virtue of temperance has more of the nature of Harmony and Symphony than the preceding how so he asked Temperance I replied is the ordering or controlling of certain pleasures and desires this is
curiously enough implied in the saying of a man being his own master and other traces of the same notion may be found in language no doubt he said there is something ridiculous in the expression master of himself for the master is also the servant and the servant the master and in all these modes of speaking the same person is denoted certainly the meaning is I believe that in the human soul there is a better and also a worse principle and when the better has the worse under control then a man is said to be master
of himself and this is a term of Praise but when owing to evil education or Association the better principle which is also the smaller is overwhelmed by the greater mass of the worse in this case he is blamed and is called the slave of self and unprincipled yes there is reason in that and now I said look at our newly created state and there you will find one of these two conditions realized for the state as you will acknowledge may be justly called master of itself if the words Temperance and self-mastery truly Express the rule
of the better part over the worse yes he said I see that what you say is true let me further note that the manifold and complex pleasures and desires and pains are generally found in children and women and servants and in the Freeman so-called who are of the lowest and more numerous class certainly he said whereas the simple and moderate desires which follow reason and are under the guidance of mind and true opinion are to be found only in a few and those the best born and best educated very true these two as you may
perceive have a place in our state and the meaner desires of the many are held down by The Virtuous desires and wisdom of the few that I perceive he said then if there be any city which may be described as master of its own pleasures and desires and master of itself ours may claim such a designation certainly he replied it may also be called temperate and for the same reasons yes and if there be any state in which rulers and subjects will be agreed as to the question who are to rule that again will be
our state undoubtedly and the citizens being thus agreed among themselves in which class will Temperance be found in the rulers or in the subjects in both as I should imagine he replied Do You observe that we were not far wrong in our guess that Temperance was a sort of Harmony why so why because Temperance is unlike courage and wisdom Each of which resides in a part only the one making the state wise and the other Valiant not so Temperance which extends to the whole and runs through all the notes of the scale and produces a
Harmony of the weaker and the stronger and the middle class whether you suppose them to be stronger or weaker in wisdom or power or numbers or wealth or anything else most truly then may we deem Temperance to be the agreement of the naturally Superior and inferior as to the right to rule of either both in States and individuals I entirely agree with you and so I said we may consider three out of the four virtues to have been discovered in our state the last of those qualities which make a state virtuous must be Justice if
we only knew what that was the inference is obvious the time then has arrived clock and when like Huntsman we should surround the cover and look sharp that Justice does not steal away and pass out of sight and Escape us for Beyond a doubt she is somewhere in this country watch therefore and strive to catch a sight of her and if you see her first let me know would that I could but you should regard me rather as a follower who has just eyes enough to see what you show him that is about as much
as I am good for offer up a prayer with me and follow I will but you must show me the way here is no path I said and the wood is dark and perplexing still we must push on Let Us push on here I saw something hello I said I begin to perceive a track and I believe that the Quarry will not Escape good news he said truly I said we are stupid fellows why so why my good sir at the beginning of our inquiry ages ago there was Justice tumbling out at our feet and
we never saw her nothing could be more ridiculous like people who go about looking for what they have in their hands that was the way with us we looked not at what we were seeking but at what was far off in the distance and therefore I suppose we missed her what do you mean I mean to say that in reality for a long time past we have been talking of justice and have failed to recognize her I grow impatient at the length of your exortium well then tell me I said whether I am right or
not you remember the original principle which we were always laying down at the foundation of the state that one man should practice one thing only the thing to which his nature was best adapted now Justice is this principle or a part of it yes we often said that one man should do one thing only further we affirm that Justice was doing one's own business and not being a busybody we said so again and again and many others have said the same to us yes we said so then to do one's own business in a certain
way may be assumed to be Justice can you tell me once I derive this inference I cannot but I should like to be told because I think that this is the only virtue which remains in the state when the other Virtues Of Temperance and courage and wisdom are abstracted and that this is the ultimate cause and condition of the existence of all of them and while remaining in them is also their preservative and we were saying that if the three were discovered by Us justice would be the fourth or remaining one that follows of necessity
if we are asked to determine which of these four qualities by its presence contributes most to the Excellence of the state whether the agreement of rulers and subjects or the preservation in the soldiers of the opinion which the law ordains about the true nature of dangers or wisdom and watchfulness in the rulers or whether this other which I am mentioning and which is found in children and women slave and Freeman Artisan ruler subject the quality I mean of everyone doing his own work and not being a busybody would claim the palm the question is not
so easily answered certainly he replied there would be a difficulty in saying which then the power of each individual in the state to do his own work appears to compete with the other political virtues wisdom Temperance courage yes he said and The Virtue which enters into this competition is Justice exactly let us look at the question from another point of view are not the rulers in a state those to whom you would entrust the office of determining suits at law certainly and our suits decided on any other ground but that a man May neither take
what is another's nor be deprived of what is his own yes that is their principle which is a just principle yes then on this view also Justice will be admitted to be the having and doing what is a man's own and belongs to him very true think now and say whether you agree with me or not suppose a carpenter to be doing the business of a cobbler or a cobbler of a carpenter and suppose them to exchange their implements or their duties or the same person to be doing the work of both or whatever be
the change do you think that any great harm would result to the state not much but when the cobbler or any other man whom nature designed to be a traitor having his heart lifted up by wealth or strength or the number of his followers or any like Advantage attempts to Force his way into the class of Warriors or a warrior into that of legislators and Guardians for which he is unfitted and either to take the implements or the duties of the other or when one man is traitor legislator and Warrior all-in-one then I think you
will agree with me in saying that this interchange and this meddling of one with another is the ruin of the state most true seeing then I said that there are three distinct classes any meddling of one with another or the change of one into another is the greatest harm to the state and maybe most justly termed evil doing precisely and the greatest degree of evildoing to one's own City would be termed by you Injustice certainly this then is Injustice and on the other hand when the traitor the auxiliary and the guardian each do their own
business that is Justice and will make the city just I agree with you we will not I said be over positive as yet but if on trial this conception of Justice be verified in the individual as well as in the state there will be no longer any room for doubt if it be not verified we must have a fresh inquiry first let us complete the old investigation which we began as you remember under the impression that if we could previously examine Justice on the larger scale there would be less difficulty in Discerning her in the
individual that larger example appeared to be the state and accordingly we constructed as good a one as we could knowing well that in the good State Justice would be found let the discovery which we made be now applied to the individual if they agree we shall be satisfied or if there be a difference in the individual we will come back to the state and have another trial of the theory the friction of the two when rubbed together may possibly strike a light in which Justice will shine forth and the vision which is then revealed we
will fix in our souls that will be in regular course let us do as you say I proceeded to ask when two things are greater and less are called by the same name are they like or unlike insofar as they are called the same like he replied the just man then if we regard the idea of Justice only will be like the just State he will and a state was thought by us to be just when the three classes in the state severally did their own business and also thought to be temperate and Valiant and
wise by reason of certain other affections and qualities of these same classes true he said and so of the individual we may assume that he has the same three principles in his own soul which are found in the state and he may be rightly described in the same terms because he is affected in the same manner certainly he said once more then oh my friend we have alighted upon an easy question whether the soul has these three principles or not an easy question nay rather Socrates the proverb holds that hard is the good very true
I said and I do not think that the method which we are employing is at all adequate to the accurate solution of this question the true method is another and a longer one still we may arrive at a solution not below the level of the previous inquiry may we not be satisfied with that he said under the circumstances I am quite content I too I replied shall be extremely well satisfied then faint not in pursuing the speculation he said must we not acknowledge I said that in each of us there are the same principles and
habits which there are in the state and that from the individual they pass into the state how else can they come there take the quality of passion or Spirit it would be ridiculous to imagine that this quality when found in states is not derived from the individuals who are supposed to possess it for example the Thracians scythians and in general the northern Nations and the same may be said of the love of knowledge which is the special characteristic of our part of the world or of the love of money which may with equal truth be
attributed to the Phoenicians and Egyptians exactly so he said there is no difficulty in understanding this none whatever but the question is not quite so easy when we proceed to ask whether these principles are three or one whether that is to say we learn with one part of our nature are angry with another and with a third part desire the satisfaction of our natural appetites or whether the whole soul comes into play in each sort of action to determine that is the difficulty yes he said there lies the difficulty then let us now try and
determine whether they are the same or different how can we he asked I replied as follows the same thing clearly cannot act or be acted upon in the same part or in relation to the same thing at the same time in contrary ways and therefore whenever this contradiction occurs in things apparently the same we know that they are really not the same but different good for example I said Can the same thing be at rest and in motion at the same time in the same part impossible still I said let us have a more precise
statement of terms lest we should hear our fall out by the way imagine the case of a man who is standing and also moving his hands and his head and suppose a person to say that one and the same person is in motion and at rest at the same moment to such a mode of speech we should object and should rather say that one part of him is in motion while another is at rest very true and suppose the objector to refine still further and to draw the nice distinction that not only parts of tops
but whole tops when they spin round with their pegs fixed on the spot are at rest and in motion at the same time and he may say the same of anything which revolves in the same spot his objection would not be admitted by us because in such cases things are not at rest and in Motion in the same parts of themselves we should rather say that they have both an axis and a circumference and that the axis stands still for there is no deviation from the perpendicular and that the circumference goes round but if while
revolving the axis inclines either to the right or left forwards or backwards then in no point of view can they be at rest that is the correct mode of describing them he replied then none of these objections will confuse us or incline us to believe that the same thing at the same time in the same part or in relation to the same thing can act or be acted upon in contrary ways certainly not according to my way of thinking yet I said that we may not be compelled to examine all such objections and prove at
length that they are untrue let us assume their absurdity and go forward on the understanding that Hereafter if this assumption turn out to be untrue all the consequences which follow shall be withdrawn yes he said that will be the best way well I said would you not allow that ascent and dissent desire and aversion attraction and repulsion are all of them opposites whether they are regarded as active or passive for that makes no difference in the fact of their opposition yes he said they are opposites well I said and hunger and thirst and the desires
in general and again willing and wishing all these you would refer to the classes already mentioned you would say would you not that the soul of him who desires is seeking after the object of his desire or that he is drawing to himself the thing which he wishes to possess or again when a person wants anything to be given him his mind longing for the realization of his desire Intimates his wish to have it by a nod of ascent as if he had been asked a question very true and what would you say of unwillingness
and dislike in the absence of Desire should not these be referred to the opposite class of repulsion and rejection certainly admitting this to be true of Desire generally let us suppose a particular class of desires and out of these we will select hunger and thirst as they are termed which are the most obvious of them let us take that class he said the object of one is food and of the other drink yes and here comes the point is not thirst the desire which the soul has of drink and of drink only not of drink
qualified by anything else for example warm or cold or much or little or in a word drink of any particular sort but if The Thirst be accompanied by heat then the desire is of cold drink or if accompanied by cold then of warm drink or if the thirst be excessive then the drink which is desired will be excessive or if not great the quantity of drink will also be small but thirst pure and simple will desire drink pure and simple which is the natural satisfaction of thirst as food is of hunger yes he said the
simple desire is as you say in every case of the simple object and the qualified desire of the qualified object but here a confusion may arise and I should wish to guard against an opponent starting up and saying that no man desires drink only but good drink or food only but good food for good is the universal object of desire and thirst being a desire will necessarily be thirst after good drink and the same is true of every other desire yes he replied the opponent might have something to say nevertheless I should still maintain that
of relatives some have a quality attached to either term of the relation others are simple and have their correlative simple I do not know what you mean well you know of course that the greater is relative to the less certainly and the much greater to the much less yes and the sometime greater to the sometime less and the greater that is to be to the less that is to be certainly he said and so of more and less and of other correlative terms such as the double and the half or again the heavier and the
lighter the swifter and the slower and of hot and cold and of any other relatives is not this true of all of them yes and does not the same principle hold in The Sciences the object of science is knowledge assuming that to be the true definition but the object of a particular science is a particular kind of knowledge I mean for example that the science of house building is a kind of knowledge which is defined and distinguished from other kinds and is therefore termed architecture certainly because it has a particular quality which no other has
yes and it has this particular quality because it has an object of a particular kind and this is true of the other Arts and Sciences yes now then if I have made myself clear you will understand my original meaning and what I said about relatives my meaning was that if one term of a relation is taken alone the other is taken alone if one term is qualified the other is also qualified I do not mean to say that relatives may not be disparate or that the science of health is healthy or of disease necessarily diseased
or that the Sciences of Good and Evil are therefore good and evil but only that when the term science is no longer used absolutely but has a qualified object which in this case is the nature of health and disease it becomes defined and is hence called not merely science but the science of Medicine I quite understand and I think as you do would you not say that thirst is one of these essentially relative terms having clearly a relation yes thirst is relative to drink and a certain kind of thirst is relative to a certain kind
of drink but thirst taken alone is neither of much nor little nor of good nor bad nor of any particular kind of drink but of drink only certainly then the Soul of the Thirsty one insofar as he is thirsty desires only drink for this he yearns and tries to obtain it that is plain and if you suppose something which pulls a thirsty Soul away from drink that must be different from the Thirsty principle which draws him like a beast to drink for as we were saying the same thing cannot at the same time with the
same part of itself act in contrary ways about the same impossible no more than you can say that the hands of the Archer push and pull the bow at the same time but what you say is that one hand pushes in the other pulls exactly so he replied and might a man be thirsty and yet unwilling to drink yes he said it constantly happens and in such a case what is one to say would you not say that there was something in the soul bidding a man to drink and something else forbidding him which is
other and stronger than the principle which bids him I should say so and the forbidding principle is derived from reason and that which bids and attracts proceeds from Passion and disease clearly then we may fairly assume that they are too and that they differ from one another the one with which a man reasons we may call the rational principle of the soul the other with which he loves and hungers and thirsts and feels the flutterings of any other desire may be termed the irrational or repetitive the Ally of sundry pleasures and satisfactions yes he said
we may fairly assume them to be different then let us finally determine that there are two principles existing in the soul and one of passion or spirit is it a third or akin to one of the proceeding I should be inclined to say akin to desire well I said there is a story which I remember to have heard and in which I put Faith the story is that leontius the son of a glaian coming up one day from the Pirates under the north wall on the outside observed some dead bodies lying on the ground at
the place of execution he felt a desire to see them and also a dread an abhorrance of them for a time he struggled and covered his eyes but at length the desire got the better of him and forcing them open he ran up to the dead body saying look he wretches take your fill of the fair sight I have heard the story myself he said the moral of the tale is that anger at times goes to war with desire as though they were two distinct things yes that is the meaning he said and are there
not many other cases in which we observe that when a man's desires violently Prevail over his reason he reviles himself and is angry at the violence within him and that in this struggle which is like the struggle of factions in a state his spirit is on the side of his reason but for the passionate or spirited element to take part with the desires when reason decides that she should not be opposed is a sort of thing which I believe that you never observed occurring in yourself nor as I should imagine in anyone else certainly not
suppose that a man thinks he has done a wrong to another the nobler he is the less able is he to feel indignant at any suffering such as hunger or cold or any other pain which the injured person may inflict upon him these he deems to be just and as I say his anger refuses to be excited by them true he said but when he thinks that he is the sufferer of the wrong then he boils and chafes and is on the side of what he believes to be Justice and because he suffers hunger or
cold or other pain he is only the more determined to persevere and Conquer his Noble spirit will not be quelled until he either slays or is slain or until he hears the voice of the Shepherd that is reason bidding his dog bark no more the illustration is perfect he replied and in our state as we were saying the auxiliaries were to be dogs and to hear the voice of the rulers who are their Shepherds I perceive I said that you quite understand me there is however a further point which I wish you to consider what
point you remember that passion or Spirit appeared at first sight to be a kind of Desire but now we should say quite the contrary for in the conflict of The Soul spirit is arrayed on the side of the rational principle most assuredly but a further question arises is Passion different from reason also or only a kind of Reason in which latter case instead of three principles in the soul there will only be two the rational and the concupiscent or rather as the state was composed of three classes Traders auxiliaries counselors so may there not be
in the individual soul a third element which is Passion or spirit and when not corrupted by bad education is the natural auxiliary of Reason yes he said there must be a third yes I replied if passion which has already been shown to be different from desire turn out also to be different from reason but that is easily proved we may observe even in young children that they are full of spirit almost as soon as they are born whereas some of them never seem to attain to the use of reason and most of them late enough
excellent I said and you may see passion equally in brute animals which is a further proof of the truth of what you are saying and we may once more appeal to the words of homer which have been already quoted by us he smote his breast and thus rebuked his soul for in this verse Homer has clearly supposed the power which reasons about the better and worse to be different from the unreasoning anger which is rebuked by it very true he said and so after much tossing we have reached land and are fairly agreed that the
same principles which exist in the state exist also in the individual and that they are three in number exactly must we not then infer that the individual is wise in the same way and in virtue of the same quality which makes the state wise certainly also that the same quality which constitutes courage in the state constitutes courage in the individual and that both the state and the individual bear the same relation to all the other virtues assuredly and the individual will be acknowledged by us to be just in the same way in which the state
is just that follows of course we cannot but remember that the Justice of the state consisted in each of the three classes doing the work of its own class we are not very likely to have forgotten he said we must recollect that the individual in whom the several qualities of his nature do their own work will be just and will do his own work yes he said we must remember that too and ought not the rational principle which is wise and has the care of the whole soul to rule and the passionate or spirited principle
to be the subject and Ally certainly and as we were saying the United Influence of Music and Gymnastic will bring them into Accord nerving and sustaining the reason with noble words and lessons and moderating and soothing and civilizing the wildness of Passion by Harmony and rhythm quite true he said and these two thus nurtured and educated and Having learned truly to know their own functions will rule over the concupiscent which in each of us is the largest part of the soul and by Nature most insatiable of gain over this they will keep guard lest waxing
great and strong with the fullness of bodily Pleasures as they are termed the concupiscent soul no longer confined to her own sphere should attempt to enslave and Rule those who are not her natural-born subjects and overturn the whole life of man very true he said both together will they not be the best defenders of the whole soul and the whole body against attacks from without the one counseling and the other fighting under his leader and courageously executing his commands and councils true and he is to be deemed courageous whose Spirit retains in pleasure and in
pain the commands of Reason about what he ought or ought not to fear right he replied and him we call Wise who has in him that little part which rules and which proclaims these commands that part two being supposed to have a knowledge of what is for the interest of each of the three parts and of the whole assuredly and would you not say that he is temperate who has these same elements in Friendly Harmony in whom the one ruling principle of reason and the two subject ones of spirit and desire are equally agreed that
reason ought to rule and do not Rebel certainly he said that is the true account of temperance whether in the state or individual and surely I said we have explained again and again how and by virtue of what quality a man will be just that is very certain and is Justice dimmer in the individual and is her form different or is she the same which we found her to be in the state there is no difference in my opinion he said because if any doubt is still lingering in our minds a few commonplace instances will
satisfy us of the truth of what I'm saying what sort of instances do you mean if the case is put to us must we not admit that the just State or the man who is trained in the principles of such a state will be less likely than the unjust to make away with a deposit of gold or silver would anyone deny this no one he replied will the just man or citizen ever be guilty of sacrilege or theft or treachery either to his friends or to his country never neither will he ever break Faith where
there have been Oaths or agreements impossible no one will be less likely to commit adultery or to dishonor his father and mother or to fail in his religious duties no one and the reason is that each part of him is doing its own business whether in ruling or being ruled exactly so are you satisfied then that the quality which makes such men in such States as Justice or do you hope to discover some other not I indeed then our dream has been realized and the suspicion which we entertained at the beginning of our work of
construction that some divine power must have conducted us to a primary form of justice has now been verified yes certainly and the division of labor which required the Carpenter and the Shoemaker and the rest of the citizens to be doing each his own business and not in others was a shadow of justice and for that reason it was of use clearly but in reality Justice was such as we were describing being concerned however not with the outward man but with the inward which is the true self and concernment of man for the just man does
not permit the several elements within him to interfere with one another or any of them to do the work of others he sets in order his own inner life and is his own master and his own law and at peace with himself and when he has bound together the three principles within him which may be compared to the higher lower and middle notes of the scale and the intermediate intervals when he has bound all these together and is no longer many but has become one entirely temperate and perfectly adjusted nature then he proceeds to act
if he has to act whether in a matter of property or in the treatment of the body or in some Affair of politics or private business always thinking and calling that which preserves and cooperates with this harmonious condition just in good action and the knowledge which presides over it wisdom and that which at any time impairs this condition he will call unjust action and the opinion which presides over it ignorance you have said the exact truth Socrates very good and if we were to affirm that we had discovered the just man and the just State
and the nature of Justice in each of them we should not be telling a falsehood most certainly not may we say so then let us say so and now I said Injustice has to be considered clearly must not Injustice be a Strife which arises among the three principles a meddlesomeness and interference and rising up of a part of the Soul against the whole an assertion of unlawful Authority which is made by a rebellious subject against a true Prince of whom he is the natural vassal what is all this confusion and delusion but Injustice and intemperance
and cowardice and ignorance in every form of Vice exactly so and if the nature of justice and Injustice be known then the meaning of acting unjustly and being unjust or again of acting justly will also be perfectly clear what do you mean he said why I said they are like disease and health being in the soul just what disease and health are in the body how so he said why I said that which is healthy causes health and that which is unhealthy causes disease yes and just actions cause Justice and unjust actions cause Injustice that
is certain and the creation of health is the institution of a natural order and government of one by another in the parts of the body and the creation of disease is the production of a state of things at variance with this natural order true and is not the creation of Justice the institution of a natural order and government of one by another in the parts of the soul and the creation of Injustice the production of a state of things at variance with the natural order exactly so he said then virtue is the health and beauty
and well-being of the soul and vice the disease and weakness and deformity of the same true and do not good practices lead to Virtue and evil practices device assuredly still our old question of the comparative advantage of justice and Injustice has not been answered which is the more profitable to be just and act justly and practice virtue whether scene or unseen of Gods and Men or to be unjust and act unjustly if only unpunished and unreformed in my judgment Socrates the question has now become ridiculous we know that when the bodily Constitution is gone life
is no longer endurable though pampered with all kinds of meats and drinks and having all wealth and all power and shall we be told that when the very essence of the vital principle is undermined and corrupted life is still worth having to a man if only he be allowed to do whatever he likes with the single exception that he is not to acquire Justice and virtue or to escape from Injustice and vice assuming them both to be such as we have described yes I said the question is as you say ridiculous still as we are
near the spot at which we may see the truth in the clearest manner with our own eyes let us not faint by the way certainly not he replied come up hither I said and behold the various forms of Vice those of them I mean which are worth looking at I am following you he replied proceed I said the argument seems to have reached a height from which as from some Tower of speculation a man may look down and see that virtue is one but that the forms of Vice are innumerable there being four special ones
which are deserving of note what do you mean he said I mean I replied that there appear to be as many forms of the Soul as there are distinct forms of the state how many there are five of the state and five of the soul I said what are they the first I said is that which we have been describing and which may be said to have two names monarchy and aristocracy accordingly as rule is exercised by one distinguished man or by many true he replied but I regard the two names as describing one form
only for whether the government is in the hands of one or many if the governors have been trained in the manner which we have supposed the fundamental laws of the state will be maintained that is true he replied book five such is the good and true city or state and the good and true man is of the same pattern and if this is right every other is wrong and the evil is one which affects not only the ordering of the state but also the regulation of the individual's soul and is exhibited in four forms what
are they he said I was proceeding to tell the order in which the four evil forms appeared to me to succeed one another when Paula Marcus who was sitting a little way off just beyond adamantis began to whisper to him stretching forth his hand he took hold of the upper part of his coat by the shoulder and Drew him towards him leaning forward himself so as to be quite close and saying something in his ear of which I only caught the words shall we let him off or what shall we do certainly not said adamantis
raising his voice who is it I said whom you are refusing to let off you he said I repeated why am I especially not to be let off why he said we think that you are lazy and mean to cheat us out of a whole chapter which is a very important part of the story and you fancy that we shall not notice your Airy way of proceeding as if it were self-evident to everybody that in the matter of women and children friends have all things in common and was I not right adamantis yes he said
but what is right in this particular case like everything else requires to be explained for Community maybe of many kinds please therefore to say what sort of community you mean we have been long expecting that you would tell us something about the family life of your citizens how they will bring children into the world and rear them when they have arrived and in general what is the nature of this community of women and children for we are of opinion that the right or wrong management of such matters will have a great and Paramount influence on
the state for good or for evil and now since the question is still undetermined and you are taking in hand another state we have resolved as you heard not to let you go until you give an account of all this to that resolution said glaucon you may regard me as saying agreed and without more Ado said through simicus you may consider us all to be equally agreed I said you know not what you are doing and thus assailing me what an argument are you raising about the state just as I thought that I had finished
and was only too glad that I had laid this question to sleep and was reflecting how fortunate I was in your acceptance of what I then said you asked me to begin again at the very Foundation ignorant of what a hornet's nest of words you are stirring now I foresaw this Gathering trouble and avoided it for what purpose do you conceive that we have come here said through simicus to look for gold or to hear discourse yes but discourse should have a limit yes Socrates said glocken and the whole of life is the only limit
which wise men assigned to the hearing of such discourses but never mind about us take heart yourself and answer the question in your own way what sort of community of women and children is this which is to Prevail among our Guardians and how shall we manage the period between birth and education which seems to require the greatest care tell us how these things will be yes my simple friend but the answer is the reverse of easy many more doubts arise about this than about our previous conclusions for the practicability of what is said may be
doubted and looked at in another point of view whether the scheme if ever so practicable would be for the best is also doubtful hence I feel a reluctance to approach the subject lest our aspiration my dear friend should turn out to be a dream only fear not he replied for your audience will not be hard upon you they are not skeptical or hostile I said my good friend I suppose that you mean to encourage me by these words yes he said then let me tell you that you are doing just the reverse the encouragement which
you offer would have been all very well had I myself believed that I knew what I was talking about to declare the truth about matters of high interest which a man honors and loves among wise men who love him need occasion no fear or faltering in his mind but to carry on an argument when you are yourself only a hesitating Inquirer which is my condition is a dangerous and slippery thing and the danger is not that I shall be laughed at of which the fear would be childish but that I shall miss the truth where
I have most need to be sure of my footing and drag my friends after me in my fall and I pray Nemesis not to visit upon me The Words which I'm going to utter for I do indeed believe that to be an involuntary homicide side is a less crime than to be a deceiver about beauty or goodness or Justice in the matter of laws and that is a risk which I would rather run among enemies than among friends and therefore you do well to encourage me glocken laughed and said well then Socrates in case you
and your argument do us any Serious injury you shall be acquitted beforehand of the homicide and shall not be held to be a Deceiver take courage then and speak well I said the law says that when a man is acquitted he is free from guilt and what holds it law May hold an argument then why should you mind well I replied I suppose that I must retrace my steps and say what I perhaps ought to have said before in the proper place the part of the men has been played out and now properly enough comes
the turn of the women of them I will proceed to speak and the more readily since I am invited by you for men born and educated like our citizens the only way in my opinion of arriving at a right conclusion about The Possession and use of women and children is to follow the path on which we originally started when we said that the men were to be the Guardians and Watchdogs of the herd true let us further suppose the birth and education of our women to be subject to similar or nearly similar regulations then we
shall see whether the result Accords with our design what do you mean what I mean may be put into the form of a question I said are dogs divided into he's and she's or do they both share equally in hunting and in keeping watch and in the other duties of dogs or do we entrust to the males the entire and exclusive care of the flocks while we leave the females at home under the idea that the bearing and suckling their puppies is labor enough for them no he said they share a like the only difference
between them is that the males are stronger and the females weaker but can you use different animals for the same purpose unless they are bred and fed in the same way you cannot then if women are to have the same duties as men they must have the same nurture and education yes the education which was assigned to the men was music and Gymnastic yes then women must be taught music and Gymnastic and also the Art of War which they must practice like the men that is the inference I suppose I should rather expect I said
that several of our proposals if they are carried out being unusual may appear ridiculous no doubt of it yes and the most ridiculous thing of all will be the sight of women naked in the palestra exercising with the men especially when they are no longer young they certainly will not be a vision of beauty any more than the enthusiastic old men who in spite of wrinkles and ugliness continue to frequent the gymnasia yes indeed he said according to present Notions The Proposal would be thought ridiculous but then I said as we have determined to speak
our minds we must not fear the jests of the wits which will be directed against this sort of innovation how they will talk of women's attainments both in music and Gymnastic and above all about their wearing armor and riding upon horseback very true he replied yet having begun we must go forward to the rough places of the law at the same time begging of these gentlemen for once in their life to be serious not long ago as we shall remind them the Helens were of the opinion which is still generally received Among The Barbarians that
the sight of a naked man was ridiculous and improper and when first the cretans and then the lysidamonians introduced the custom the Wits of that day might equally have ridiculed the innovation no doubt but when experience showed that to let all things be uncovered was far better than to cover them up and the ludicrous effect to the outward eye vanished before the better principle which reason asserted then the man was perceived to be a fool who directs the shafts of his ridicule at any other site but that of folly and vice or seriously inclines to
weigh the Beautiful by any other standard but that of the good very true he replied first then whether the question is to be put in jest or in Earnest let us come to an understanding about the nature of woman is she capable of sharing either holy or partially in the actions of men or not at all and is the Art of War one of those arts in which she can or cannot share that will be the best way of commencing the inquiry and will probably lead to the fairest conclusion that will be much the best
way shall we take the other side first and begin by arguing against ourselves in this manner the adversary's position will not be undefended why not he said then let us put a speech into the mouths of our opponents they will say Socrates and glocken no adversary need convict you for you yourselves at the first foundation of the state admitted the principle that everybody was to do the one work suited to his own nature and certainly if I'm not mistaken such an admission was made by us and do not the natures of men and women differ
very much indeed and we shall reply of course they do then we shall be asked whether the tasks assigned to men and women should not be different and such as are agreeable to their different Natures certainly they should but if so have you not fallen into a serious inconsistency in saying that men and women whose Natures are so entirely different ought to perform the same actions what defense will you make for us my good sir against anyone who offers these objections that is not an easy question to answer when asked suddenly and I shall and
I do beg of you to draw out the case on our side these are the objections Glock on and there are many others of a like kind which I foresaw long ago they made me afraid and reluctant to take in hand any law about The Possession and nurture of women and children by Zeus he said the problem to be solved is anything but easy why yes I said but the fact is that when a man is out of his depth whether he has fallen into a little swimming bath or into mid-ocean he has to swim
all the same very true and must not we swim and try to reach the shore we will hope that aryan's dolphin or some other miraculous help May save us I suppose so he said well then let us see if any way of Escape can be found we acknowledged did we not the different Natures ought to have different Pursuits and that men's and women's Natures are different and now what are we saying that different Natures ought to have the same Pursuits this is the inconsistency which is charged Upon Us precisely verily glocken I said glorious is
the power of the art of contradiction why do you say so because I think that many a man falls into the practice against his will when he thinks that he is reasoning he is really disputing just because he cannot Define and divide and so know that of which he is speaking and he will pursue a merely verbal opposition in the spirit of contention and not a fair discussion yes he replied such is very often the case but what has that to do with us and our argument a great deal for there is certainly a danger
of our getting unintentionally into a verbal opposition in what way why we valiantly and pugnaciously insist upon the verbal truth that different Natures ought to have different Pursuits but we never considered at all what was the meaning of sameness or difference of nature or why we distinguish them when we assign different Pursuits to different natures and the same to the same natures why no he said that was never considered by us I said suppose that by way of illustration we were to ask the question whether there is not an opposition in nature between bald men
and hairy men and if this is admitted by us then if bald men are cobblers we should forbid the hairy men to be cobblers and conversely that would be a jest he said yes I said a jest and why because we never meant when we constructed the state that the opposition of natures should extend to every difference but only to those differences which affected the pursuit in which the individual is engaged we should have argued for example that a physician and one who is in mind a physician may be said to have the same nature
true whereas The Physician and the carpenter have different Natures certainly and if I said the male and female sex appear to differ in their Fitness for any art or Pursuit we should say that such pursuit or art ought to be assigned to one or the other of them but if the difference consists only in women bearing and Men be getting children this does not amount to a proof that a woman differs from a man in respect of the sort of Education she should receive and we shall therefore continue to maintain that our Guardians and their
wives ought to have the same Pursuits very true he said next we shall ask our opponent how in reference to any of the Pursuits or Arts of Civic life the nature of a woman differs from that of a man that will be quite fair and perhaps he like yourself will reply that to give a sufficient answer on the instant is not easy but after a little reflection there is no difficulty yes perhaps suppose then that we invite him to accompany us in the argument and then we may hope to show him that there is nothing
peculiar in the constitution of women which would affect them in the administration of the state by all means let us say to him come now and we will ask you a question when you spoke of a nature gifted or not gifted in any respect did you mean to say that one man will acquire a thing easily another with difficulty a little learning will lead the one to discover a great deal whereas the other after much study and application no sooner learns than he forgets or again did you mean that the one has a body which
is a good servant to his mind while the body of the other is a hindrance to him would not these be the sort of differences which distinguish the man gifted by Nature from the one who is Ungifted no one will deny that and can you mention any pursuit of mankind in which the male sex has not all these gifts and qualities in a higher degree than the female need I waste time in speaking of the art of weaving and the management of Pancakes and preserves in which woman kind does really appear to be great and
in which for her to be beaten by a man is of all things the most absurd you're quite right he replied in maintaining the general inferiority of the female sex although many women are in many things Superior to many men yet on the whole what you say is true and if so my friend I said there is no special faculty of administration in a state which a woman has because she is a woman or which a man has by virtue of his sex but the gifts of nature are alike diffused in both all the Pursuits
of men are the Pursuits of women also but in all of them a woman is inferior to a man very true then are we to impose all our enactments on men and none of them on women that will never do one woman has a gift of healing another not one is a musician and another has no music in her nature very true and one woman has a turn for gymnastic and Military exercises and another is on warlike and hates gymnastics certainly and one woman is a philosopher and another is an enemy of philosophy one has
spirit and another is without spirit that is also true then one woman will have the temper of a guardian and another not was not the selection of the male Guardians determined by differences of this sort yes men and women alike possess the qualities which make a guardian they differ only in their comparative strength or weakness obviously and those women who have such qualities are to be selected as the Companions and colleagues of men who have similar qualities and whom they resemble in capacity and in character very true and not not the same Natures to have
the same Pursuits they ought then as we were saying before there is nothing unnatural in assigning music and Gymnastic to the wives of the Guardians to that point we come round again certainly not the law which we then enacted was agreeable to Nature and therefore not an impossibility or mere aspiration and the contrary practice which prevails at present is in reality a violation of nature that appears to be true we had to consider first whether our proposals were possible and secondly whether they were the most beneficial yes and the possibility has been acknowledged yes the
very great benefit has next to be established quite so you will admit that the same education which makes a man a good Guardian will make a woman a good Guardian for their original nature is the same yes I should like to ask you a question what is it would you say that all men are equal in excellence or is one man better than another the latter and in the Commonwealth which we were founding do you conceive the Guardians who have been brought up on our model system to be more perfect men or the Cobblers whose
education has been cobbling what a ridiculous question you have answered me I replied well and may we not further say that our Guardians are the best of our citizens by far the best and will not their wives be the best women yes by far the best and can there be anything better for the interests of the state than that the men and women of a state should be as good as possible there can be nothing better and this is what the Arts of music and Gymnastic when present in such manner as we have described will
accomplish certainly then we have made an enactment not only possible but in the highest degree beneficial to the state true then let the wives of our Guardians strip for their virtue will be their robe and let them share in the toils of War and the defense of their country only in the distribution of labors the lighter are to be assigned to the women who are the weaker Natures but in other respects their duties are to be the same and as for the man who laughs at naked women exercising their bodies from the best of motives
in his laughter he is plucking a fruit of unripe wisdom and he himself is ignorant of what he is laughing at or what he is about for that is and ever will be the best of sayings that the useful is the noble and the hurtful is the base very true here then is one difficulty in our law about women which we may say we have now escaped the wave has not swallowed us up alive for enacting that the Guardians of either sex should have all their Pursuits in common to the utility and also to the
possibility of this Arrangement the consistency of the argument with itself Bears Witness yes that was a mighty wave which you have escaped yes I said but a greater is coming you will not think much of this when you see the next go on let me see the law I said which is the sequel of this and of all that has preceded is to the following effect that the wives of our Guardians are to be common and their children are to be common and no parent is to know his own child nor any child his parent
yes he said that is a much greater wave than the other and the possibility as well as the utility of such a law are far more questionable I do not think I said that there can be any dispute about the very great utility of having wives and children in common the possibility is quite another matter and will be very much disputed I think that a good many doubts may be raised about both you imply that the two questions must be combined I replied now I meant that you should admit the utility and in this way
as I thought I should escape from one of them and then there would remain only the possibility but that little attempt is detected and therefore you will please to give a defense of both well I said I submit to my fate yet grant me a little favor let me Feast my mind with the dream as daydreamers are in the habit of feasting themselves when they are walking alone for before they have discovered any means of affecting their wishes that is a matter which never troubles them they would rather not Tire themselves by thinking about possibilities
but assuming that what they desire is already granted to them they proceed with their plan and Delight in detailing what they mean to do when their wish has come true that is a way which they have of not doing much good to a capacity which was never good for much now I myself am beginning to lose heart and I should like with your permission to pass over the question of possibility at present assuming therefore the possibility of The Proposal I shall now proceed to inquire how the rulers will carry out these arrangements and I shall
demonstrate that our plan if executed will be of the greatest benefit to the state and to the Guardians first of all then if you have no objection I will endeavor with your help to consider the advantages of the measure and Hereafter the question of possibility I have no objection proceed first I think that if our rulers and their auxiliaries are to be worthy of the name which they bear there must be willingness to obey in the one and the power of command in the other the Guardians must themselves obey the laws and they must also
imitate the spirit of them in any details which are entrusted to their care that is right he said you I said who are their legislator having selected the men will now select the women and give them to them they must be as far as possible of like Natures with them and they must live in common houses and meet at common meals none of them will have anything especially his or her own they will be together and will be brought up together and will associate a gymnastic exercises and so they will be drawn by a necessity
of their Natures to have intercourse with each other necessity is not too strong a word I think yes he said necessity not geometrical but another sort of necessity which lovers know and Which is far more convincing and constraining to the mass of mankind true I said and this glocken like all the rest must proceed after an orderly fashion in a city of the Blessed licentiousness is an Unholy thing which the rulers will forbid yes he said and it ought not to be permitted then clearly the next thing will be to make matrimony sacred in the
highest degree and what is most beneficial will be deemed sacred exactly and how can marriages be made most beneficial that is a question which I put to you because I see in your house dogs for hunting and of the nobler sort of birds not a few now I beseech you do tell me have you ever attended to their pairing and breeding in what particulars why in the first place although they are all of a good sort are not some better than others true and do you breed from them all indifferently or do you take care
to breed from the best only from the best and you take the oldest of the youngest or only those of ripe age I choose only those of ripe age and if care was not taken in the breeding your dogs and birds would greatly deteriorate certainly and the same of horses and animals in general undoubtedly good Heavens my dear friend I said what consummate skill will our rulers need if the same principle holds of the human species certainly the same principle holds but why does this involve any particular skill because I said our rulers will often
have to practice upon the body corporate with medicines now you know that when patients do not require medicines but have only to be put under a regimen the inferior sort of practitioner is deemed to be good enough but when medicine has to be given then the doctor should be more of a man that is quite true he said but to what are you eluding I mean I replied that our rulers will find a considerable dose of falsehood and deceit necessary for the good of their subjects we were saying that the use of all these things
regarded as medicines might be of advantage and we were very right and this lawful use of them seems likely to be often needed in the regulations of marriages and births how so why I said the principal has been already laid down that the best of either sex should be United with the best as often and the inferior with the inferior as seldom as possible and that they should rear The Offspring of the one sort of Union but not of the other if the flock is to be maintained in first-rate condition now these goings-on must be
a secret which the rulers only know or there will be a further danger of our herd as the Guardians may be termed breaking out into Rebellion very true had we not better appoint certain festivals at which we will bring together the brides and bridegrooms and sacrifices will be offered in suitable hymenial songs composed by our poets the number of weddings is a matter which must be left to the discretion of the rulers whose aim will be to preserve the average of population there are many other things which they will have to consider such as the
effects of wars and diseases and any similar agencies in order as far as this is possible to prevent the state from becoming either too large or too small certainly he replied we shall have to invent some ingenious kind of lots which the less worthy May draw on each occasion of our bringing them together and then they will accuse their own ill luck and not the rulers to be sure he said and I think that our braver and better youth besides their other honors and rewards might have greater facilities of intercourse with women given them their
bravery will be a reason and such fathers ought to have as many sons as possible true and the proper officers whether male or female or both for offices are to be held by women as well as by men yes the proper officers will take The Offspring of the good parents to the pen or fold and there they will deposit them with certain nurses who dwell in a separate quarter but The Offspring of the inferior or of the better when they chance to be deformed will be put away in some mysterious unknown place as they should
be yes he said that must be done if the breed of the Guardians is to be kept pure they will provide for their nurture and will bring the mothers to the fold when they are full of milk taking the greatest possible care that no mother recognizes her own child and other wet nurses may be engaged if more are required care will also be taken that the process of suckling shall not be protracted too long and the mothers will have no getting up at night or other trouble but will hand over all this sort of thing
to the nurses and attendants you suppose the wives of our Guardians to have a fine easy time of it when they are having children why said I and so they ought let us however proceed with our scheme we were saying that the parents should be in the prime of Life very true and what is the prime of life may it not be defined as a period of about 20 years in a woman's life and 30 in a man's which years do you mean to include a woman I said at 20 years of age May begin
to Bear children to the state and continue to Bear them until forty a man May begin at Five and Twenty when he has passed the point at which the pulse of Life beats quickest and continue to beget children until he be 55. certainly he said both in men and women those years are the prime of physical as well as of intellectual vigor anyone above or below the prescribed ages who takes part in the public amenials shall be said to have done an Unholy and unrighteous thing the child of which he is the father if it
steals into life will have been conceived under auspices very unlike the sacrifices and prayers which at each amino priestesses and Priests and the whole city will offer that the new generation may be better and more useful than their good and useful parents whereas his child will be The Offspring of darkness and strange lust very true he replied and the same law will apply to any one of those within the prescribed age who forms a connection with any woman in the prime of life without the sanction of the rulers for we shall say that he is
raising up a bastard to the state uncertified and unconsecrated very true he replied this applies however only to those who are within the specified age after that we allow them to range at will except that a man may not marry his daughter or his daughter's daughter or his mother or his mother's mother and women on the other hand are prohibited for marrying their sons or fathers or Sons son or Father's father and so on in either direction and we Grant all this accompanying the permission with strict orders to prevent any embryo which may come into
being from seeing the light and if any Force await to the birth the parents must understand that The Offspring of such an Union cannot be maintained and arrange accordingly that also he said is a reasonable proposition but how will they know who are fathers and daughters and so on they will never know the way will be this dating from the day of the hymenyl the bridegroom who was then married will call all the male children who are born in the 7th and tenth month afterwards his sons and the female children his daughters and they will
call him father and he will call their children his grandchildren and they will call the Elder generation grandfathers and grandmothers all who were begotten at the time when their fathers and mothers came together will be called their brothers and sisters and these as I was saying will be forbidden to intermarry this however is not to be understood as an absolute prohibition of the marriage of brothers and sisters if the lot favors them and they receive the sanction of the pythian Oracle the law will allow them quite right he replied such is the scheme glaucon According
to which the Guardians of our state are to have their wives and families in common and now you would have the argument show that this community is consistent with the rest of our polity and also that nothing can be better would you not yes certainly shall we try to find a common basis by asking of ourselves what ought to be the chief aim of the legislator in making laws and in the organization of a state what is the greatest good and what is the greatest evil and then consider whether our previous description has the stamp
of the good or of the evil by all means can there be any greater evil than Discord and distraction and plurality where Unity ought to Reign or any greater good than the bond of unity there cannot and there is Unity where there is community of pleasures and pains where all the citizens are glad or grieved on the same occasions of joy and sorrow no doubt yes and where there is no common but only private feeling a state is disorganized when you have one half of the world triumphing and the other plunged in grief at the
same events happening to the city or the citizens certainly such differences commonly originate in a disagreement about the use of the terms mine and not mine his and not his exactly so and is not that the best ordered state in which the greatest number of persons apply the terms mine and not mine in the same way to the same thing quite true or that again which most nearly approaches to the condition of the individual as in the body when but a finger of one of us is hurt the whole frame drawn towards the soul as
a center and forming one Kingdom Under the ruling power therein feels the hurt and sympathizes all together with the part affected and we say that the man has a pain in his finger and the same expression is used about any other part of the body which has a sensation of pain and suffering or of pleasure at the alleviation of suffering very true he replied and I agree with you that in the best ordered State there is the nearest approach to this common feeling which you describe than when any one of the citizens experiences any good
or evil the whole state will make his case their own and will either Rejoice or sorrow with him yes he said that is what will happen in a well-ordered state it will now be time I said for us to return to our state and see whether this or some other form is most in accordance with these fundamental principles very good our state like every other has rulers and subjects true all of whom will call one another citizens of course but is there not another name which people give to their rulers in other states generally they
call them Masters but in Democratic states they simply call them rulers and in our state what other name besides that of citizens do the people give the rulers they are called saviors and helpers he replied and what do the rulers call the people they're maintainers and Foster fathers and what do they call them in other states slaves and what do the rulers call one another in other states fellow rulers and what in ours fellow Guardians did you ever know an example in any other state of a ruler who would speak of one of his colleagues
as his friend and of another as not being his friend yes very often and the friend he regards and describes as one in whom he has an interest and the other is a stranger in whom he has no interest exactly but would any of your Guardians think or speak of any other Guardian as a stranger certainly he would not for everyone whom they meet will be regarded by them either as a brother or sister or father or mother or son or daughter or as the child or parent of those who are thus connected with him
capital I said but let me ask you once more shall they be a family in name only or shall they in all their actions be true to the name for example in the use of the word father would the care of a father be implied and the filial reverence and Duty and obedience to him which the law commands and is the Violator of these duties to be regarded as an impious and unrighteous person who is not likely to receive much good either at the hands of God or of man are these to be or not
to be the strains which the children will hear repeated in their ears by all the citizens about those who are intimated to them to be their parents and the rest of their kins Folk these he said and none other for what can be more ridiculous than for them to utter the names of family ties with the lips only and not to act in the spirit of them then in our city the language of Harmony and Concord will be more often heard than in any other as I was describing before when anyone is well or ill
the universal word will be with me it is well or it is ill most true and agreeably to this mode of thinking and speaking were we not saying that they will have their pleasures and pains in common yes and so they will and they will have a common interest in the same thing which they will alike call my own and having this common interest they will have a common feeling of Pleasure and Pain yes far more so than in other states and the reason of this over and above the general constitution of the state will
be that the Guardians will have a community of women and children that will be the chief reason and this Unity of feeling we admitted to be the greatest good as was implied in our own comparison of a well ordered state to the relation of the body and the members when affected by Pleasure or pain that we acknowledged and very rightly then the community of wives and children among our citizens is clearly the source of the greatest good to the state certainly and this agrees with the other principle which we were affirming that the Guardians were
not to have houses or lands or any other property their pay was to be their food which they were to receive from the other citizens and they were to have no private expenses for we intended them to preserve their true character of Guardians right he replied both the community of property and the community of families as I am saying tend to make them more truly Guardians they will not tear the city in pieces by differing about mine and not mine each man dragging any acquisition which he has made into a separate House of his own
where he has a separate wife and children and private pleasures and pains but all will be affected as far as may be by the same pleasures and pains because they are all of One opinion about what is near and dear to them and therefore they all tend towards a common end certainly he replied and as they have nothing but their persons which they can call their own suits and complaints will have no existence among them they will be delivered from all those quarrels of which money or children or relations are the occasion of course they
will neither will Trials for assault or insult ever be likely to occur among them for that equals should defend themselves against equals we shall maintain to be honorable and right we shall make the protection of the person a matter of necessity that is good he said yes and there is a further good in the law Biz that if a man has a quarrel with another he will satisfy his resentment then and there and not proceed to more dangerous lengths certainly to the Elder shall be assigned the duty of ruling and chastising the younger clearly nor
can there be a doubt that the younger will not strike or do any other violence to an elder unless the magistrates command him nor will he slight him in any way for there are two Guardians shame and fear Mighty to prevent him shame which makes men refrain from laying hands on those who are to them in the relation of parents fear that the injured one will be suckered by the others who are his brothers Sons fathers that is true he replied then in every way the laws will help the citizens to keep the peace with
one another yes there will be no want of peace and as the Guardians will never quarrel among themselves there will be no danger of the rest of the city being divided either against them or against one another none whatever I hardly like even to mention the little meannesses of which they will be rid for they are beneath notice such for example as the flattery of the rich by the poor and all the pains and pangs which men experience in bringing up a family and in finding money to buy necessaries for their household borrowing and then
repudiating getting how they can and giving the money into the hands of women and slaves to keep the many evils of so many kinds which people suffer in this way are mean enough and obvious enough and not worth speaking of yes he said a man has no need of eyes in order to perceive that and from all these evils they will be delivered and their life will be blessed as the life of Olympic Victors and yet more blessed how so the Olympic Victor I said is deemed happy in receiving a part only of the blessedness
which is secured to our citizens who have won a more glorious Victory and have a more complete maintenance at the public cost for the victory which they have won is the Salvation of the whole state and the crown with which they and their children are crowned is the fullness of all that life needs they receive rewards from the hands of their country while living and after death have an honorable burial yes he said and glorious rewards they are do you remember I said how in the course of the previous discussion someone who shall be nameless
accused us of making our Guardians unhappy they had nothing and might have possessed all things to whom we replied that if an occasion offered we might perhaps Hereafter consider this question but that as it present advised we would make our Guardians truly Guardians and that we were fashioning the state with a view to the greatest happiness not of any particular class but of the whole yes I remember and what do you say now that the life of our protectors is made out to be far better and nobler than that of Olympic Victors is the life
of shoemakers or any other Artisans or of husbandmen to be compared with it certainly not at the same time I ought here to repeat what I have said elsewhere that if any of our Guardians shall try to be happy in such a manner that he will cease to be a guardian and is not content with this safe and harmonious life which in our judgment is of all lives the best but infatuated by some youthful conceit of Happiness which gets up into his head shall seek to appropriate the whole state to himself then he will have
to learn how wisely hes he had spoke when he said half is more than the whole if he were to consult me I should say to him stay where you are when you have the offer of such a life you agree then I said that men and women are to have a common way of life such as we have described common education common children and they are to watch over the citizens in common whether abiding in the city or going out to war they are to keep watch together and to hunt together like dogs and
always and in all things as far as they are able women are to share with the men and in so doing they will do what is best and will not violate but preserve the natural relation of the sexes I agree with you he replied the inquiry I said has yet to be made whether such a community be found possible as among other animals so also among men and if possible in what way possible you have anticipated the question which I was about to suggest there is no difficulty I said in seeing how war will be
carried on by them how of course they will go on Expeditions together and will take with them any of their children who are strong enough that after the manner of The Artisan's child they may look on at the work which they will have to do when they are grown up and besides looking on they will have to help and be of use in war and to wait upon their fathers and mothers did you never observe in the Arts how The Potter's boys look on and help long before they touch the wheel yes I have and
shall Potters be more careful in educating their children and in giving them the opportunity of seeing and practicing their duties then our Guardians will be the idea is ridiculous he said there is also the effect on the parents with whom as with other animals the presence of their young ones will be the greatest incentive to Valor that is quite true Socrates and yet if they are defeated which may often happen in war how great the danger is the children will be lost as well as their parents and the state will never recover true I said
but would you never allow them to run any risk I am far from saying that well but if they are ever to run a risk should they not do so on some occasion when if they escape disaster they will be the better for it clearly whether the future soldiers do or do not see war in the days of their youth is a very important matter for the sake of which some risk May fairly be incurred yes very important this then must be our first step to make our children Spectators of War but we must also
contrive that they shall be secured against danger then all will be well true their parents may be supposed not to be blind to the risks of War but to know as far as human foresight can what Expeditions are safe and what dangerous that may be assumed and they will take them on the safe Expeditions and be cautious about the Dangerous Ones true and they will place them under the command of experienced veterans who will be their leaders and teachers very properly still the dangers of War cannot be always foreseen there is a good deal of
chance about them true then again such chances the children must be at once furnished with wings in order that in the hour of need they may fly away and Escape what do you mean he said I mean that we must Mount them on horses in their earliest Youth and when they have learned to ride take them on Horseback to see War the horses must not be spirited and warlike but the most tractable and yet the swiftest that can be had in this way they will get an excellent view of what is Hereafter to be their
own business and if there is danger they have only to follow their Elder leaders and Escape I believe that you are right he said next as to War what are to be the relations of your soldiers to one another and to their enemies I should be inclined to propose that the soldier who leaves his rank or throws away his arms or is guilty of any other Act of cowardice should be degraded into the rank of a husbandman or artisan what do you think by all means I should say and he who allows himself to be
taken prisoner may as well be made a present of to his enemies he is their lawful prey and let them do what they like with him certainly but the hero who has distinguished himself what shall be done to him in the first place he shall receive honor in the Army from his youthful comrades every one of them in succession shall crown him what do you say I approve and what do you say to his receiving the right hand of Fellowship to that too I agree but you will hardly agree to my next proposal what is
your proposal that he should kiss and be kissed by them most certainly and I should be disposed to go further and say let no one whom he has a mind to kiss refuse to be kissed by him while the Expedition lasts so that if there be a lover in the Army whether his love be youth or Maiden he may be more eager to win the prize of Valor capital I said that the brave man is to have more wives than others has been already determined and he is to have first choices in such matters more
than others in order that he may have as many children as possible agreed again there is another manner in which according to Homer Brave youth should be honored for he tells how Ajax after he had distinguished himself in battle was rewarded with long Chinese which seems to be a compliment appropriate to a hero in the flower of his age being not only a tribute of Honor but also a very strengthening thing most true he said then in this I said Homer shall be our teacher and we too at sacrifices and on the like occasions will
honor the brave according to the measure of their Valor whether men or women with hymns and those other distinctions which we were mentioning also with seats of Precedence and meats and full cups and in honoring them we shall be at the same time training them that he replied is excellent yes I said and when a man dies gloriously in war shall we not say in the first place that he is of the golden race to be sure nay have we not the authority of hezid for affirming that when they are dead they are Holy Angels
upon the Earth authors of good averters of evil the Guardians of speech gifted men yes and we accept his authority we must learn of the God how we are to order the sepulture of divine and heroic personages and what is to be their special distinction and we must do as he bids by all means and in ages to come we will reverence them and kneel before their sepulchers as at the graves of Heroes and not only they but any who are deemed preeminently good whether they die from age or in any other way shall be
admitted to the same Honors that is very right he said next how shall our soldiers treat their enemies what about this in what respect do you mean first of all in regard to slavery do you think it right that Helene should enslave Hellenic States or allow others to enslave them if they can help should not their custom be to spare them considering the danger which there is that the whole race May one day fall under the Yoke of The Barbarians to spare them is infinitely better the no Helene should be owned by them as a
slave that is a rule which they will observe and advise the other means to observe certainly he said they will in this way be United against the barbarians and will keep their hands off one another next as to the slain ought the conquerors I said to take anything but their armor does not the practice of despoiling an enemy afford an excuse for not facing the battle coward skulk about the dead pretending that they are fulfilling a duty and many an army before now has been lost from this love of plunder very true and is there
not illiberality in avarice in robbing a corpse and also a degree of meanness and womanishness in making an enemy of the dead body when the real enemy is flown away and left only his fighting gear behind him is not this rather like a dog who cannot get at his assailant quarreling with the stones which strike him instead very like a dog he said then we must abstain from spoiling the dead or hindering their burial yes he replied we most certainly must neither shall we offer up arms at the temples of the Gods least of all
the arms of Helens if we care to maintain Good Feeling with other helenes and indeed we have reason to fear that the offering of spoils taken from Kinsmen may be a pollution unless commanded by the God himself very true again as to the devastation of Hellenic territory or the burning of houses what is to be the practice may I have the pleasure he said of hearing your opinion both should be forbidden in my judgment I would take the annual produce and no more shall I tell you why pray do why you see there is a
difference in the names Discord and War and I imagine that there is also a difference in their Natures the one is expressive of what is internal and domestic the other of what is external and foreign and the first of the two is termed Discord and only the second war that is a very proper distinction he replied and may I not observe with equal propriety that the Hellenic race is all United together by ties of blood and friendship and alien and strange to The Barbarians very good he said and therefore when Helene's fight with barbarians and
barbarians with Helens they will be described by us as being at War when they fight and by Nature enemies and this kind of antagonism should be called War but when Helene's fight with one another we shall say that hellus is then in a state of disorder and Discord they being by Nature friends and such enmity is to be called Discord I agree consider then I said when that which we have acknowledged to be Discord occurs and a city is divided if both parties destroy the lands and burn the houses of one another how Wicked does
The Strife appear no true lover of his country would bring himself to tear in pieces his own nurse and mother there might be reason in the Conqueror depriving the conquered of their Harvest but still they would have the idea of Peace in their hearts and would not mean to go on fighting forever yes he said that is a better temper than the other and will not the city which you are founding be in Hellenic City it ought to be he replied then will not the citizens be good and civilized yes very civilized and will they
not be lovers of helles and think of helles as their own land and share in the common temples most certainly and any difference which arises among them will be regarded by them as Discord only a quarrel among friends which is not to be called a war certainly not then they will quarrel as those who intend someday to be reconciled certainly they will use friendly correction but will not enslave or destroy their opponents they will be correctors not enemies just so and as they are Helens themselves they will not devastate helles nor will they burn houses
nor ever suppose that the whole population of a city men women and children are equally their enemies for they know that the guilt of war is always confined to a few persons and that the many are their friends and for all these reasons they will be unwilling to waste their lands and raise their houses their enmity to them will only last until the many innocent have compelled the guilty few to give satisfaction I agree he said that our citizens should thus deal with their Hellenic enemies and with barbarians as the helenes now deal with one
another then let us enact this law also for our Guardians that they are neither to devastate the lands of Helen's nor to burn their houses agreed and we may agree also in thinking that these like all our previous enactments are very good but still I must say Socrates that if you are allowed to go on in this way you will entirely forget the other question which at the commencement of this discussion you thrust aside is such an order of things possible and how if at all for I'm quite ready to acknowledge that the plan which
you propose if only feasible would do all sorts of good to the state I will add what you have omitted that your citizens will be the bravest of Warriors and will never leave their ranks for they will all know one another and each will call the other father brother son and if you suppose the women to join their armies whether in the same rank or in the rear either as a terror to the enemy or as auxiliaries in case of need I know that they will then be absolutely invincible and there are many domestic advantages
which might also be mentioned and which I also fully acknowledge but as I admit all these advantages and as many more as you please if only this state of yours were to come into existence we need say no more about them assuming then the existence of the state let us now turn to the question of possibility and Ways and Means the rest may be left if I loiter for a moment you instantly make a raid upon me I said and have no mercy I have hardly escaped the first and second waves and you seem not
to be aware that you are now bringing upon me the third which is the greatest and heaviest when you have seen and heard the third wave I think you will be more considerate and will acknowledge that some fear and hesitation was natural respecting a proposal so extraordinary as that which I have now to State and investigate the more appeals of this sort which you make he said The more determined are we that you shall tell us how such a state is possible speak out in at once let me Begin by reminding you that we found
our way hither in the search after Justice and Injustice true he replied but what of that I was only going to ask whether if we have discovered them we are to require that the just men should in nothing fail of absolute Justice or may we be satisfied with an approximation and the attainment in him of a higher degree of Justice than is to be found in other men the approximation will be enough we were inquiring into the nature of absolute Justice and into the character of the perfectly just and into Injustice and the perfectly unjust
that we might have an ideal we were to look at these in order that we might judge of our own happiness and unhappiness according to the standard which they exhibited and the degree in which we resembled them but not with any view of showing that they could exist in fact true he said would a painter be any the worse because after having delineated with consummate art an ideal of a perfectly beautiful man he was unable to show that any such man could ever have existed he would be none the worse well and were we not
creating an ideal of a perfect state to be sure and is our Theory a worse Theory because we are unable to prove the possibility of a city being ordered in the manner described surely not he replied that is the truth I said but if at your request I am to try and show how and under what conditions the possibility is highest I must ask you having this in view to repeat your former admissions what admissions I want to know whether ideals are ever fully realized in language does not the word express more than the fact
and must not the actual whatever a man may think always in the nature of Things fall short of the truth what do you say I agree then you must not insist on my proving that the actual state will in every respect coincide with the ideal if we are only able to discover how a city may be governed nearly as we proposed you will admit that we have discovered the possibility which you demand and will be contented I am sure that I should be contented will not you yes I will let me next Endeavor to show
what is that fault in states which is the cause of their present maladministration and what is the least change which will enable a state to pass into the truer form and let the change if possible be of one thing only or if not of two at any rate let the changes be as few and slight as possible certainly he replied I think I said that there might be a reform of the state if only one change were made which is not a slight or easy though still a possible one what is it he said now
then I said I go to meet that which I liken to the greatest of the Waves yet shall the word be spoken even though the wave break and drown me in laughter and dishonor and do you mark my words proceed I said until philosophers are Kings or the Kings and princes of this world have the spirit and power of philosophy and political greatness and wisdom meet in one and those commoner Natures who pursue either to the exclusion of the other are compelled to stand aside cities will never have rest from their evils nor the human
race as I believe and then only will this our state have a possibility of life and behold the light of day such was the thought my dear glaucon which I would feign of uttered if it had not seem too extravagant for to be convinced that in no other state can there be happiness private or public is indeed a hard thing Socrates what do you mean I would have you consider that the word which you have uttered is one at which numerous persons and very respectable persons to in a figure pulling off their coats all in
a moment and seizing any weapon that comes to hand will run at you might and Main before you know where you are intending to do heaven knows what and if you don't prepare an answer and put yourself in motion you will be paired by their fine wits and no mistake you got me into the scrape I said and I was quite right however I will do all I can to get you out of it but I can only give you good will and good advice and perhaps I may be able to fit answers to your
questions better than another that is all and now having such an auxiliary you must do your best to show the unbelievers that you are right I ought to try I said since you offered me such invaluable assistance and I think that if there is to be a chance of our escaping we must explain to them whom we mean when we say that philosophers are to rule in the state then we shall be able to defend ourselves there will be discovered to be some Natures who ought to study philosophy and to be leaders in the state
and others who are not born to be philosophers and are meant to be followers rather than leaders then now for a definition he said follow me I said and I hope that I may in some way or other be able to give you a satisfactory explanation proceed I dare say that you remember and therefore I need not remind you that a lover if he is worthy of the name ought to show his love not to someone part of that which he loves but to the whole I really do not understand and therefore beg of you
to assist my memory another person I said might fairly reply as you do but a man of pleasure like yourself ought to know that all who are in the flower of Youth do somehow or other raise a Pang or emotion in a Lover's breast and are thought by him to be worthy of his affectionate regards is not this a way which you have with the fair one has a snub nose and you praise His Charming face the hook knows of another has you say a royal look while he who is neither snubbed nor hooked has
the grace of regularity the dark Visage is manly the fair are children of the Gods and as to the Sweet Honey pale as they are called what is the very name but the invention of a lover who talks in diminutives and is not averse to paleness if appearing on the cheek of Youth in a word there is no excuse which you will not make and nothing which you will not say in order not to lose a single flower that blooms in the springtime of Youth if you make me an authority in matters of love for
the sake of the argument I ascend and what do you say of lovers of wine do you not see them doing the same they are glad of any pretext of drinking any wine very good and the same is true of ambitious men if they cannot command an army they are willing to command a file and if they cannot be honored by really great and important persons they are glad to be honored by lesser and meaner people but honor of some kind they must have exactly once more let me ask does he who desires any class
of goods desire the whole class or a part only the whole and may we not say of the philosopher that he is a lover not of a part of wisdom only but of the whole yes of the whole and he who dislikes learning especially in youth when he has no power of judging what is good and what is not such in one we maintain not to be a philosopher or a lover of knowledge just as he who refuses his food is not hungry and may be said to have a bad appetite and not a good
one very true he said whereas he who has a taste for every sort of knowledge and who is curious to learn and is never satisfied may be justly termed a philosopher am I not right glaucon said if curiosity makes a philosopher you will find many a strange being will have a title to the name all the lovers of sights have a delight in learning and must therefore be included musical amateurs too are a folk strangely out of place among philosophers for they are the last persons in the world who would come to anything like a
philosophical discussion if they could help while they run about at the dionysiac festivals as if they had let out their ears to hear every chorus whether the performance is in town or country that makes no difference they are there now are we to maintain that all these and any who have similar tastes as well as the professors of quite minor Arts are philosophers certainly not I replied they are only an imitation he said who then are the true philosophers those I said who are lovers of the vision of truth that is also good he said
but I should like to know what you mean to another I replied I might have a difficulty in explaining but I am sure that you will admit a proposition which I am about to make what is the proposition that since beauty is the opposite of ugliness they are too certainly and in as much as they are too each of them is one true again and of just an unjust good and evil and of every other class the same remark holds taken singly each of them is one but from the various combinations of them with actions
and things and with one another they are seen in all sorts of lights and appear many very true and this is the distinction which I draw between the sight-loving art loving practical class and those of whom I am speaking and who are alone worthy of the name of philosophers how do you distinguish them he said the lovers of sounds and sights I replied are as I conceive fond of fine tones and colors and forms and all the artificial products that are made out of them but their mind is incapable of seeing or loving absolute Beauty
true he replied few are they who are able to attain to the sight of this very true and he who having a sense of beautiful things has no sense of absolute beauty or who if another lead him to a knowledge of that beauty is unable to follow of such and one I ask is he awake or in a dream only reflect is not the dreamer sleeping or Waking one who Likens dissimilar things who puts the copy in the place of the real object I should certainly say that such and one was dreaming but take the
case of the other who recognizes the existence of absolute Beauty and is able to distinguish the idea from the objects which participate in the idea neither putting the objects in the place of the idea nor the idea in the place of the objects is he a dreamer or is he awake he is wide awake and may we not say that the mind of the one who knows has knowledge and that the mind of the other who opines only has opinion certainly but suppose that the latter should quarrel with us and dispute our statement can we
administer any soothing cordial or advice to him without revealing to him that there is sad disorder in his wits we must certainly offer him some good advice he replied come then and let us think of something to say to him Shall We Begin by assuring him that he is welcome to any knowledge which he may have and that we are rejoiced at his having it but we should like to ask him a question does he who has knowledge know something or nothing you must answer for him I answer that he knows something something that is
or is not something that is for how can that which is not ever be known and are we assured after looking at the matter for many points of view that absolute being is or maybe absolutely known but that the utterly non-existent is utterly unknown nothing can be more certain good but if there be anything which is of such a nature as to be and not to be that will have a place intermediate between pure being and the absolute negation of being yes between them and as knowledge corresponded to being and ignorance of necessity to not
being for that intermediate between being and not being there has to be discovered a corresponding intermediate between ignorance and knowledge if there be such certainly do we admit the existence of opinion undoubtedly as being the same with knowledge or another faculty another faculty then opinion and knowledge have to do with different kinds of matter corresponding to this difference of faculties yes and knowledge is relative to being and knows being but before I proceed further I will make a division what division I will Begin by placing faculties in a class by themselves they are powers in
us and in all other things by which we do as we do sight and hearing for example I should call faculties have I clearly explained the class which I mean yes I quite understand then let me tell you my view about them I do not see them and therefore the distinctions of figure color and the like which enable me to discern the differences of some things do not apply to them in speaking of A Faculty I think only of its sphere and its result and that which has the same sphere and the same result I
call the same faculty but that which has another sphere and another result I call different would that be your way of speaking yes and will you be so very good as to answer one more question would you say that knowledge is a faculty or in what class would you place it certainly knowledge is a faculty and the mightiest of all faculties and his opinion also a faculty certainly he said for opinion is that with which we are able to form an opinion and yet you are acknowledging a little while ago that knowledge is not the
same as opinion why yes he said How can any reasonable being ever identify that which is infallible with that which errs an excellent answer proving I said that we are quite conscious of a distinction between them yes then knowledge and opinion having distinct Powers have also distinct spheres or subject matters that is certain being is the sphere or subject matter of knowledge and knowledge is to know the nature of being yes and opinion is to have an opinion yes and do we know what we opine or is the subject matter of opinion the same as
the subject matter of knowledge nay he replied that has been already disproven if difference in faculty implies difference in the sphere or subject matter and if as we were saying opinion and knowledge are distinct faculties then the sphere of knowledge and of opinion cannot be the same then if being is a subject matter of knowledge something else must be the subject matter of opinion yes something else well then is not being the subject matter of opinion or rather How can there be an opinion at all about not being reflect when a man has an opinion
has he not an opinion about something can he have an opinion which is an opinion about nothing impossible he who has an opinion has an opinion about some one thing yes and not being is not one thing but properly speaking nothing true of not being ignorance was assumed to be the necessary correlative of being knowledge true he said then opinion is not concerned either with being or with not being not with either and can therefore neither be ignorance nor knowledge that seems to be true but his opinion to be sought without and Beyond either of
them in a greater clearness than knowledge or in a greater Darkness than ignorance in neither then I suppose that opinion appears to you to be darker than knowledge but lighter than ignorance both and in no small degree and also to be within and between them yes then you would infer that opinion is intermediate no question but were we not saying before that if anything appeared to be of A Sort which is and is not at the same time that sort of thing would appear also to lie in the interval between pure being and absolute not
being and that the corresponding faculty is neither knowledge nor ignorance but will be found in the interval between them true and in that interval there has now been discovered something which we call opinion there has then what remains to be discovered is the object which partakes equally of the nature of being and not being and cannot rightly be termed either pure and simple this unknown term when discovered we may truly call the subject of opinion and assign each to their proper faculty the extremes to the faculties of the extremes and the mean to the faculty
of the mean true this being premised I would ask the gentleman who is of opinion that there is no absolute or unchangeable idea of Beauty in whose opinion the beautiful is the manifold he I say your lover of beautiful sights who cannot bear to be told that the beautiful is one and the Justice one or that anything is one to him I would appeal saying will you be so very kind sir as to tell us whether of all these beautiful things there is one which will not be found ugly or of the just which will
not be found unjust or of the Holy which will not also be Unholy no he replied the Beautiful Will in some point of view be found ugly and the same is true of the rest and may not the many which are doubles be also haves doubles that is of one thing and haves of another quite true and Things Great and Small heavy and light as they are termed will not be denoted by these any more than by the opposite names true both these and the opposite names will always attach to all of them and can
any one of those many things which are called by particular names be said to be this rather than not to be this he replied they are like the punning riddles which are asked at feasts or the children's puzzle about the eunuch aiming at the bat with what he hit him as they say in the puzzle and upon what the bat was sitting the individual objects of which I am speaking are also a riddle and have a double sense nor can you fix them in your mind either as being or not being or both or neither
then what will you do with them I said can they have a better place than between being and not being for they are clearly not in Greater Darkness or negation than not being or more full of light and existence than being that is quite true he said thus then we seem to have discovered that the many ideas which the multitude entertain about the beautiful and about all other things are tossing about in some region which is halfway between pure being and pure not being we have yes and we had before agreed that anything of this
kind which we might find was to be described as matter of opinion and not as matter of knowledge being the intermediate flux which is caught and detained by the intermediate faculty quite true then those who see the many beautiful and who yet neither see absolute Beauty nor can follow any guide who points the way thither who see the many just and not absolute Justice and the like such persons may be said to have opinion but not knowledge that is certain but those who see the absolute and eternal and immutable may be said to know and
not to have opinion only neither can that be denied the one love and embrace the subjects of knowledge the other those of opinion the latter are the same as I dare say you will remember who listen to sweet sounds and gazed upon Fair colors but would not tolerate the existence of absolute Beauty yes I remember shall we then be guilty of any impropriety in calling them lovers of opinion rather than lovers of wisdom and will they be very angry with us for thus describing them I shall tell them not to be angry no man should
be angry at what is true but those who love the truth in each thing are to be called lovers of wisdom and not lovers of opinion assuredly book six and thus glaucon after the argument has gone a weary way the true and the false philosophers have at length appeared in view I do not think he said that the way could have been shortened I suppose not I said and yet I believe that we might have had a better view of both of them if the discussion could have been confined to this one subject and if
there were not many other questions awaiting us which he who desires to see in what respect the life of the just differs from that of the unjust must consider and what is the next question he asked surely I said the one which follows next in order in as much as philosophers only are able to grasp the Eternal and unchangeable and those who wander in the region of the many invariable are not philosophers I must ask you which of the two classes should be the rulers of our state and how can we rightly answer that question
whichever of the two are best able to guard the laws and institutions of our state let them be our Guardians very good neither I said can there be any question that the guardian who is to keep anything should have eyes rather than no eyes there can be no question of that and are not those who are verily and indeed wanting in the knowledge of the true being of each thing and who have in their souls no clear pattern and are unable as with a painter's eye to look at the absolute truth and to that original
to repair and having perfect vision of the other world to order the laws about beauty goodness Justice in this if not already ordered and to guard and preserve the order of them are not such persons I ask simply blind truly he replied they are much in that condition and shall they be our Guardians when there are others who besides being their equals in experience and falling short of them in no particular a virtue also know the very truth of each thing there can be no reason he said for rejecting those who have this greatest of
all great qualities they must always have the first place unless they fail in some other respect suppose then I said that we determine how far they can unite this and the other excellences by all means in the first place as we began by observing the nature of the philosopher has to be ascertained we must come to an understanding about him and when we have done so then if I am not mistaken we shall also acknowledge that such a union of qualities is possible and that those in whom they are united and those only should be
rulers in the state what do you mean let us suppose that philosophical Minds always love knowledge of A Sort which shows them the Eternal nature not varying from generation and Corruption agreed and further I said let us agree that they are lovers of all true being there is no part whether greater or less or more or less honorable which they are willing to renounce as we said before of the lover and the man of ambition true and if they are to be what we were describing is there not another quality which they should also possess
what quality truthfulness they will never intentionally receive into their mind falsehood which is their detestation and they will love the truth yes that may be safely affirmed of them maybe my friend I replied is not the word say rather must be Affirmed for he whose nature is amorous of anything cannot help loving all that belongs or is akin to the object of his affections right he said and is there anything more akin to wisdom than truth how can there be can the same nature be a lover of wisdom and a lover of falsehood never the
true lover of learning then must from his earliest youth as far as in him lies desire all truth assuredly but then again as We Know by experience he whose desires are strong in One Direction will have them weaker in others they will be like a stream which has been drawn off into another Channel true he whose desires are drawn towards knowledge in every form will be absorbed in the pleasures of the soul and will hardly feel bodily pleasure I mean if he be a true philosopher and not a sham one that is most certain such
and one is sure to be temperate in the reverse of covetous for the motives which make another man desirous of having and spending have no place in his character very true another Criterion of the philosophical Nature has also to be considered what is that there should be no secret corner of illiberality nothing can be more antagonistic than meanness to a soul which is ever ever longing after the whole of things both Divine and human most true he replied then how can he who has magnificence of mind and is The Spectator of all time and all
existence think much of human life he cannot or can such an One account death fearful no indeed then the cowardly and mean Nature has no part in true philosophy certainly not or again can he who is harmoniously constituted who is not Covetous or mean or a boaster or a coward can he I say ever be unjust or hard in his dealings impossible then you will soon observe whether a man is just and gentle or rude and unsociable these are the signs which distinguish even in youth the philosophical nature from the unphilosophical true there is another
point which should be remarked what point whether he has or has not a pleasure in learning for no one will love that which gives him pain and in which after much toil he makes little progress certainly not and again if he is forgetful and retains nothing of what he learns will he not be an empty vessel that is certain laboring in vain he must end in hating himself and his fruitless occupation yes then a soul which forgets cannot be ranked among genuine philosophic Natures we must insist that the philosopher should have a good memory certainly
and once more the inharmonious and unseemly nature can only tend to disproportion undoubtedly and do you consider truth to be akin to proportion or to disproportion to proportion then besides other qualities we must try to find a naturally well proportioned and gracious mind which will move spontaneously towards the true being of everything certainly well and do not all these qualities which we have been enumerating go together and are they not in a manner necessary to a soul which is to have a full and perfect participation of being they are absolutely necessary he replied and must
not that be a blameless study which he only can pursue who has the gift of a good memory and is quick to learn Noble gracious the friend of truth justice courage Temperance who are his Kindred the god of jealousy himself he said could find no fault with such a study and to men like him I said when perfected by years in education and to these only you will entrust the state here adamantis interposed and said to these statements Socrates no one can offer a reply but when you talk in this way a strange feeling passes
over the minds of your hearers they fancy that they are LED astray a little at each step in the argument owing to their own want of skill in asking and answering questions these Littles accumulate and at the end of the discussion they are found to have sustained a mighty overthrow and all their former Notions appear to be turned upside down and as unskillful players of drafts are at last shut up by their more skillful adversaries and have no peace to move so they too find themselves shut up at last for they have nothing to say
in this new game of which words are the counters and yet all the time they are in the right the observation is suggested to me by what is now occurring for any one of us might say that although in words he is not able to meet you at each step of the argument he sees as a fact that the voteries of philosophy when they carry on the study not only in youth as a part of education but as the pursuit of their mature years most of them become strange monsters not to say utter Rogues and
that those who may be considered the best of them are made useless to the World by the very study which you extol well and do you think that those who say so are wrong I cannot tell he replied but I should like to know what is your opinion hear my answer I am of opinion that they are quite right then how can you be justified in saying that cities will not cease from Evil until philosophers rule in them when philosophers are acknowledged by us to be of no use to the them you ask a question
I said to which a reply can only be given in a parable yes Socrates and that is a way of speaking to which you are not at all accustomed I suppose I perceive I said that you are vastly amused at having plunged me into such a hopeless discussion but now hear the parable and then you will be still more amused at the meagerness of my imagination for the manner in which the best men are treated in their own States is so Grievous that no single thing on earth is comparable to it and therefore if I
am to plead their cause I must have recourse to fiction and put together a figure made up of many things like the fabulous unions of goats and Stags which are found in pictures imagine then a fleet or a ship in which there is a captain who is taller and stronger than any of the crew but he is a little deaf and has a similar infirmity in sight and his knowledge of navigation is not much better the sailors are quarreling with one another about the steering everyone is of opinion that he has a right to steer
though he has never learned the art of navigation and cannot tell who taught him or when he learned and will further assert that it cannot be taught and they are ready to cut in pieces anyone who says the contrary they throng about the captain begging and praying him to commit the helm to them and if at any time they do not Prevail but others are preferred to them they kill the others or throw them overboard and having first chained up the noble Captain's senses with drink or some narcotic drug they Mutiny and take possession of
the ship and make free with the stores thus eating and drinking they proceed on their Voyage in such manner as might be expected of them him who is their partisan and cleverly AIDS them in their plot for getting the ship out of the captain's hands into their own whether by force or persuasion they complement with the name of Sailor pilate Abel Seaman and abuse the other sort of man whom they call a good for nothing but that the true pilot must pay attention to the year and seasons and sky and stars and winds and whatever
else belongs to his art if he intends to be really qualified for the command of a ship and that he must and will be the steerer whether other people like or not the possibility of this Union of authority with the steerer's art has never seriously entered into their thoughts or been made part of their calling now in vessels which are in a state of mutiny and by Sailors who are mutineers how will the true pilot be regarded will he not be called by them a Prater a stargazer a good for nothing of course said adamantis
then you will hardly need I said to hear the interpretation of the figure which describes the true philosopher in his relation to the state for you understand already certainly then suppose you now take this Parable to the gentleman who is surprised at finding that philosophers have no honor in their cities explain it to him and try to convince him that they're having honor would be far more extraordinary I will say to him that in deeming the best voteries of philosophy to be useless to the rest of the world he is right but also tell him
to attribute their uselessness to the fault of those who will not use them and not to themselves the pilot should not humbly beg the sailors to be commanded by him that is not the order of nature neither are the wise to go to the doors of the rich the ingenious author of this saying told a lie but the truth is that when a man is ill whether he be rich or poor to The Physician he must go and he who wants to be governed to him who is able to govern the ruler who is good
for anything ought not to beg his subjects to be ruled by him although the present governors of mankind are of a different stamp they may be justly compared to the mutinous sailors and the true Helmsman to those who are called by them good for nothings and stargazers precisely so he said for these reasons and among men like these philosophy the noblest pursuit of all is not likely to be much esteemed by those of the opposite faction not that the greatest and most lasting injury is done to her by her opponents but by her own professing
followers the same of whom you suppose the accuser to say that the greater number of them are Aaron Rogues and the best are useless in which opinion I agreed yes and the reason why the good are useless has now been explained true then shall we proceed to show that the corruption of the majority is also unavoidable and that this is not to be laid to the charge of philosophy any more than the other by all means and let us ask an answer in turn first going back to the description of the gentle and Noble nature
truth as you will remember was his leader whom he followed always and in all things failing in this he was an imposter and had no part or lot in true philosophy yes that was said well and is not this one quality to mention no others greatly at variance with present Notions of him certainly he said and have we not a right to say in his defense that the true lover of knowledge is always striving after being that is his nature he will not rest in the multiplicity of individuals which is an appearance only but will
go on the Keen Edge will not be blunted nor the force of his desire Abate until he have attained the knowledge of the true nature of every essence by a sympathetic and Kindred power in the soul and by that power drawing near and mingling and becoming in corporate with very being having begotten mind and Truth he will have knowledge and will live and grow truly and then and not till then will he cease from his travail nothing he said can be more just than such a description of him and will the love of a lie
be any part of a philosopher's nature will he not utterly hate a lie he will and when truth is the captain we cannot suspect any evil of the band which he leads impossible Justice and health of mind will be of the company and Temperance will follow after true he replied neither is there any reason why I should again set in Array the Philosopher's virtues as you will doubtless remember that courage magnificence apprehension memory were his natural gifts and you objected that although no one could deny what I then said still if you leave words and
look at facts the persons who are thus described are some of the manifestly useless and the greater number utterly depraved we were then led to inquire into the grounds of these accusations and have now arrived at the point of asking why are the majority bad which question of necessity brought us back to the examination and definition of the true philosopher exactly and we have next to consider the Corruptions of the philosophic nature why so many are spoiled and so few Escape spoiling I am speaking of those who were said to be useless but not Wicked
and when we have done with them we will speak of the imitators of philosophy what manner of men are they who Aspire after a profession which is above them and of which they are unworthy and then by their manifold inconsistencies bring upon philosophy and upon all philosophers that Universal reprobation of which we speak what are these Corruptions he said I will see if I can explain them to you everyone will admit that a nature having imperfection all the qualities which we required in a philosopher is a rare plant which is seldom seen among men rare
indeed and what numberless and Powerful causes tend to destroy these rare Natures what causes in the first place there are their own virtues their courage Temperance and the rest of them every one of which praiseworthy qualities and this is a most singular circumstance destroys and distracts from philosophy the soul which is the possessor of them that is very singular he replied then there are all the ordinary Goods of Life Beauty wealth strength Rank and great connections in the state you understand the sort of things these also have a corrupting and distracting effect I understand but
I should like to know more precisely what you mean about them grasp the truth as a whole I said and in the right way you will then have no difficulty in apprehending the preceding remarks and they will no longer appear strange to you and how am I to do so he asked why I said we know that all germs are seeds whether vegetable or animal when they fail to meet with proper nutriment or climate or soil in proportion to their Vigor are all the more sensitive to the want of a suitable environment for evil is
a greater enemy to what is good than to what is not very true there is reason in supposing that the finest Natures when under alien conditions receive more injury than the inferior because the contrast is greater certainly and may we not say adamantis that the most gifted Minds when they are ill-educated become preeminently bad do not great crimes in the spirit of Pure Evil spring out of a fullness of nature ruined by education rather than from any inferiority whereas weak Natures are scarcely capable of any very great good or very great evil there I think
that you are right and our philosopher follows the same analogy he is like a plant which having proper nurture must necessarily grow and mature into all virtue but if sown and planted in an alien soil becomes the most noxious of all weeds unless he be preserved by some divine power do you really think as people so often say that our youth are corrupted by sophists or that private teachers of the art corrupt them in any degree worth speaking of are not the public who say these things the greatest of all sophists and do they not
educate to Perfection young and old men and women alike and fashion them after their own hearts when is this accomplished he said when they meet together and the world sits down at an assembly or in a court of law or a theater or a camp or in any other popular Resort and there is a great uproar and they praise some things which are being said or done and blame other things equally exaggerating both shouting and clapping their hands and the echo of the rocks and the place in which they are assembled redoubles the sound of
the praise or blame at such a time will not a young man's heart as they say leap within him will any private training enable him to stand firm against the overwhelming flood of popular opinion or will he be carried away by the stream will he not have the Notions of Good and Evil which the public in general have he will do as they do and as they are such will he be yes Socrates necessity will compel him and yet I said there is a still greater necessity which has not been mentioned what is that the
gentle force of attainder or confiscation or death which as you are aware these new sophists and Educators who are the public apply when their words are powerless indeed they do and in right good Earnest now what opinion of any other sophist or of any private person can be expected to overcome in such an unequal contest none he replied no indeed I said even to make the attempt is a great piece of folly there neither is nor has been nor is ever likely to be any different type of character which has had no other training in
virtue but that which is supplied by public opinion I speak my friend of human virtue only what is more than human as the proverb says is not included for I would not have you ignorant that in the present evil state of governments whatever is saved and comes to good is saved by the power of God as we may truly say I quite Ascent he replied then let me crave your Ascent also to a further observation what are you going to say why that all those mercenary individuals whom the many call sophists and whom they deem
to be their adversaries do in fact teach nothing but the opinion of the many that is to say the opinions of their assemblies and this is their wisdom I might compare them to a man who should study the tempers and desires of a mighty strong Beast who is fed by him he would learn how to approach and handle him also at what times and from what causes he is dangerous or the reverse and what is the meaning of his several cries and by what sounds when another utters them he is soothed or infuriated and you
may suppose further that when by continually attending upon him he has become perfect in all this he calls his knowledge wisdom and makes of it a system or art which he proceeds to teach although he has no real notion of what he means by the principles or passion of which he is speaking but calls this honorable and that dishonorable or good or evil or just or unjust all in accordance with the tastes and tempers of the great brute good he pronounces to be that in which the Beast Delights and evil to be that which he
dislikes and he can give no other account of them except that the just and Noble are the necessary having never himself seen and having no power of explaining to others the nature of either or the difference between them which is immense by Heaven would not such and one be a rare educator indeed he would and in what way does he who thinks that wisdom is the discernment of the tempers and tastes of the motley multitude whether in painting or music or finally in politics differ from him whom I have been describing for when a man
consorts with the many and Exhibits to them his poem or other work of art or the service which he has done the state making them his judges when he is not obliged the so-called necessity of diomedia will oblige him to produce whatever they praise and yet the reasons are utterly ludicrous which they give in confirmation of their own Notions about the honorable and good did you ever hear any of them which were not no nor am I likely to hear you recognize the truth of what I've been saying then let me ask you to consider
further whether the world will ever be induced to believe in the existence of absolute Beauty rather than of the many beautiful or of the absolute in each kind rather than of the many in each kind certainly not then the world cannot possibly be a philosopher impossible and therefore philosophers must inevitably fall under the center of the world they must and of individuals who can sort with the mob and seek to please them that is evident then do you see any way in which the philosopher can be preserved in his calling to the end and remember
what we were saying of him that he was to have quickness and memory and courage and magnificence these were admitted by us to be the true philosopher's gifts yes will not such an one from his early childhood be in all things first among all especially if his bodily endowments are like his mental ones certainly he said and his friends and fellow citizens will want to use him as he gets older for their own purposes no question falling At His Feet they will make requests to him and do him honor and flatter him because they want
to get into their hands now the power which he will one day possess that often happens he said and what will a man such as he is be likely to do under such circumstances especially if he be a citizen of a great City rich and Noble and a tall proper youth will he not be full of boundless aspirations and fancy himself able to manage the Affairs of Helene's and of Barbarians and having got such Notions into his head will he not dilate and Elevate himself in the fullness of vain Pomp and senseless Pride to be
sure he will now when he is in this state of mind if someone gently comes to him and tells him that he is a fool and must get understanding which can only be got by slaving for it do you think that under such adverse circumstances he will be easily induced to listen far otherwise and even if there be someone who through inherent goodness or natural reasonableness has had his eyes opened a little and is humbled and taken captive by philosophy how will his friends behave when they think that they are likely to lose the advantage
which they were hoping to reap from his companionship will they not do and say anything to prevent him from yielding to his better nature and to render his teacher powerless using to this end private intrigues as well as public prosecutions there can be no doubt of it and how can one who is thus circumstanced ever become a philosopher impossible then were we not right in saying that even the very qualities which make a man a philosopher May if he be ill-educated divert him from philosophy no less than riches in their accompaniments and the other so-called
Goods of life we were quite right thus my excellent friend is brought about all that ruin and failure which I have been describing of the Nature's Best adapted to the best of all Pursuits they are Natures which we maintain to be rare at any time this being the class out of which come the men who are the authors of the greatest evil to States and individuals and also of the greatest good when the tide carries them in that direction but a small man never was the doer of any great thing either to individuals or to
States that is most true he said and so philosophy is left desolate with her marriage right incomplete for her own have fallen away and forsaken her and while they are leading a false and Unbecoming life other unworthy persons seeing that she has no Kinsmen to be her protectors enter in and dishonor her and fasten upon her the reproaches which as you say her reprovers utter who affirm of her voteries that some are good for nothing and that the greater number deserve the severest punishment that is certainly what people say yes and what else would you
expect I said when you think of the puny creatures who seeing this land open to them a land well stocked with Fair names and showy titles like prisoners running out of prison into a sanctuary take a leap out of their trades into philosophy those who do so being probably the cleverest hands at their own miserable crafts for although philosophy be in this evil case still there remains a dignity about her which is not to be found in the Arts and many are thus attracted by her whose Natures are imperfect and whose souls are maimed and
disfigured by their meannesses as their bodies are by their trades and crafts is not this unavoidable yes are they not exactly like a bald Little Tinker who has just got out of Durance and come into a fortune he takes a bath and puts on a new coat and is decked out as a bridegroom going to marry his master's daughter who is left poor and desolate a most exact parallel what will be the issue of such marriages will they not be vile and bastard there can be no question of it and when persons who are Unworthy
of Education approach philosophy and make an alliance with her who is in a rank above them what sort of ideas and opinions are likely to be generated will they not be sophisms captivating to the ear having nothing in them genuine or worthy of or akin to True wisdom no doubt he said then adamantis I said the worthy Disciples of philosophy will be but a small Remnant perchance some Noble and well-educated person detained by Exile in her service who in the absence of corrupting influences remains devoted to her or some lofty Soul born in a mean
City the politics of which he condemns and neglects and there may be a gifted few who leave the Arts which they justly despise and come to her or per Adventure there are some who are restrained by our friend theogey's Bridal for everything in the life of theologies conspired to divert him from philosophy but ill health kept him away from politics my own case of the internal sign is hardly worth mentioning for rarely if ever has such a monitor been given to any other man those who belong to this small class have tasted how sweet and
blessed a possession philosophy is and have also seen enough of The Madness of the multitude and they know that no politician is honest nor is there any champion of Justice at whose side they may fight and be saved such and one may be compared to a man who has fallen among wild beasts he will not join in the wickedness of his fellows but neither is he able singly to resist all their Fierce natures and therefore seeing that he would be of no use to the state or to his friends and reflecting that he would have
to throw away his life without doing any good either to himself or others he holds his peace and goes his own way he is like one who in the storm of dust and sleet which the driving wind hurries along retires under the shelter of a wall and seeing the rest of mankind full of wickedness he is content if only he can live his own life and be pure from evil or unrighteousness and depart in peace and Good Will with Bright Hopes yes he said and he will have done a great work before he departs a
great work yes but not the greatest unless you find a state suitable to him for in a state which is suitable to him he will have a larger growth and be the savior of his country as well as of himself the causes why philosophy is in such an evil name have now been sufficiently explained the Injustice of the charges against her has been shown is there anything more which you wish to say nothing more on that subject he replied but I should like to know which of the governments now existing is in your opinion the
one adapted to her not any of them I said and that is precisely the accusation which I bring against them not one of them is worthy of the philosophic nature and hence that nature is Warped and estranged as the Exotic seed which is sown in a foreign land becomes denaturalized and is want to be overpowered and to lose itself in the new soil even so this growth of philosophy instead of persisting degenerates and receives another character but if philosophy ever finds in the state that Perfection which she herself is then will be seen that she
is in truth Divine and that all other things whether Natures of men or institutions are but human and now I know that you are going to ask what that state is no he said there you are wrong for I was going to ask another question whether it is the state of which we are the founders and inventors or some other yes I replied ours in most respects but you may remember my saying before that some living Authority would always be required in the state having the same idea of the Constitution which guided you when as
legislator you were laying down the laws that was said he replied yes but not in a satisfactory manner you frightened Us by interposing objections which certainly showed that the discussion would be long and difficult and what Still Remains is the reverse of easy what is their remaining the question how the study of philosophy may be so ordered as not to be the ruin of the state all great attempts are attended with risk heart is the good as men say still he said let the point be cleared up and the inquiry will then be complete I
shall not be hindered I said by any want of will but if at all by a want of power my Zeal you may see for yourselves and pleased to remark in what I'm about to say how boldly and unhesitatingly I declare that states should pursue philosophy not as they do now but in a different spirit in what manner at present I said the students of philosophy are quite young beginning when they are hardly past childhood they devote only the time saved from money making and housekeeping to such Pursuits and even those of them who are
reputed to have most of the philosophic spirit when they come within sight of the great difficulty of the subject I mean dialectic take themselves off in afterlife when invited by someone else they may perhaps go and hear a lecture and about this they make Much Ado for philosophy is not considered by them to be their proper business at last when they grow old in most cases they are extinguished more truly than heraclitis's son inasmuch as they never light up again heraclitus said that the sun was extinguished every evening and relighted every morning but what ought
to be their course just the opposite in childhood and youth their study and what philosophy they learn should be suited to their Tender Years during this period while they are growing up towards manhood the chief in Special Care should be given to their bodies that they may have them to use in the service of philosophy as life advances and the intellect begins to mature let them increase the gymnastics of the soul but when the strength of our citizens fails and is past civil and Military duties then let them range at will and engage in no
serious labor as we intend them to live happily here and to Crown this life with a similar happiness in another how truly an Earnest you are Socrates he said I am sure of that and yet most of your Heroes if I am not mistaken are likely to be still more Earnest in their opposition to you and will never be convinced through simicus least of all do not make a quarrel I said between thracimicus and me who have recently become friends although indeed we were never enemies for I shall go on striving to the utmost until
I either convert him and other men or do something which may profit them against the day when they live again and hold the like discourse in another state of existence you are speaking of a time which is not very near rather I replied of a time which is as nothing in comparison with eternity nevertheless I do not wonder that the many refuse to believe for they have never seen that of which we are now speaking realized they have seen only a conventional imitation of philosophy consisting of words artificially brought together not like these of ours
having a natural Unity but a human being who in word and work is perfectly molded as far as he can be into the proportion and likeness of virtue such a man ruling in a city which Bears the same image they have never yet seen neither one nor many of them do you think that the ever did no indeed no my friend and they have seldom if ever heard free and Noble sentiments such as men utter when they are earnestly and by every means in their power seeking after Truth for the sake of knowledge while they
look coldly on the subtleties of controversy of which the end is opinion and strife whether they meet with them in the courts of law or in society they are strangers he said to the words of which you speak and this was what we foresaw and this was the reason why truth forced us to admit not without fear and hesitation that neither cities nor States nor individuals will ever attain Perfection until the small class of philosophers whom we termed useless but not corrupt are providentially compelled whether they will or not to take care of the state
and until a like necessity be laid on the state to obey them or until Kings or if not Kings the sons of Kings or princes are divinely inspired with a true love of true philosophy that either or both of these alternatives are impossible I see no reason to affirm if they were so we might indeed be justly ridiculed as dreamers and Visionaries am I not right quite right if then in the countless ages of the past or at the present hour in some foreign climb Which is far away and beyond our Ken the perfected philosopher
is or has been or Hereafter shall be compelled by a superior power to have the the charge of the state we are ready to assert to the death that this our constitution has been and is yea and will be whenever the Muse of philosophy is Queen there is no impossibility in all this that there is a difficulty we acknowledge ourselves my opinion agrees with yours he said but do you mean to say that this is not the opinion of the multitude I should imagine not he replied oh my friend I said do not attack the
multitude they will change their minds if not in an aggressive Spirit but gently and with the view of soothing them and removing their dislike of over-education you show them your philosophers as they really are and describe as you were just now doing their character and profession and then mankind will see that he of whom you are speaking is not such as they supposed if they view him in this new light they will surely change their notion of him and answer in another strain who can be at enmity with one who loves them who that is
himself gentle and free from Envy will be jealous of one in whom there is no jealousy nay let me answer for you that in a few this harsh temper may be found but not in the majority of mankind I quite agree with you he said and you not also think as I do that the harsh feeling which the many entertain towards philosophy originates in The Pretenders who rush in Uninvited and are always a them and finding fault with them who make persons instead of things the theme of their conversation and nothing can be more Unbecoming
in philosophers than this it is most Unbecoming for he adamantis whose mind is fixed upon true being has surely no time to look down upon the Affairs of Earth or to be filled with malice and envy contending against men His Eye Is ever directed towards things fixed and immutable which he sees neither injuring nor injured by one another but all in order moving according to reason these he imitates and to these he will as far as he can conform himself can a man help imitating that with which he holds reverential Converse impossible and the philosopher
holding converse with the divine order becomes orderly and divine as far as the nature of man allows But like everyone else he will suffer from detraction of course and if a necessity be laid upon Him of fashioning not only himself but human nature generally whether in states or individuals into that which he beholds elsewhere will he think you be an unskillful artificer of Justice Temperance in every civil virtue anything but unskillful and if the world perceives that what we are saying about him is the truth will they be angry with philosophy will they disbelieve us
when we tell them that no state can be happy which is not designed by artists who imitate the Heavenly pattern they will not be angry if they understand he said but how will they draw out the plan of which you are speaking they will Begin by taking the state and the manners of men from which as from a tablet they will rub out the picture and leave a clean surface this is no easy task but whether easy or not herein will lie the difference between them and every other legislator they will have nothing to do
either with individual or state and will inscribe no laws until they have either found or themselves made a clean surface they will be very right he said having affected this they will proceed to trace an outline of the Constitution no doubt and when they are filling in the work as I conceive they will often turn their eyes upwards and downwards I mean that they will first look at Absolute Justice and beauty and Temperance and again at the human copy and will mingle and temper the various Elements of Life into the image of a man and
this they will conceive according to that other image which when existing among men Homer calls the form and likeness of God very true he said and one feature they will erase and another they will put in until they have made the ways of men as far as possible agreeable to the ways of God indeed he said in no way could they make a fairer picture and now I said are we beginning to persuade Those whom you described as rushing at us with might and Main that the painter of constitutions is such and one as we
are praising at whom they were so very indignant because to his hands we committed the State and are they growing a little calmer at what they have just heard much calmer if there is any sense in them why where can they still find any ground for objection will they doubt that the philosopher is a lover of Truth and being they would not be so unreasonable or that his nature being such as we have delineated is akin to the highest good neither can they doubt this but again will they tell us that such a nature placed
under favorable circumstances will not be perfectly good and wise if any ever was or will they prefer Those whom we have rejected surely not then will they still be angry at our saying that until philosophers bear rule states and individuals will have no rest from Evil nor will this our imaginary State ever be realized I think that they will be less angry shall we assume that they are not only less angry but quite gentle and that they have been converted and for very shame if for no other reason cannot refuse to come to terms by
all means he said then let us suppose that the reconciliation has been affected will anyone deny the other point that there may be sons of Kings or princes who are by Nature philosophers surely no man he said and when they have come into being will anyone say that they must of necessity be destroyed that they can hardly be saved is not denied even by us but that in the whole course of Ages no single one of them can escape who will venture to affirm this who indeed but said I one is enough let there be
one man who has a city obedient to his will and he might bring into existence the ideal polity about which the world is so incredulous yes one is enough the ruler May impose the laws and institutions which we have been describing and the citizens may possibly be willing to obey them certainly and that others should approve of what we approve is no Miracle or impossibility I think not but we have sufficiently shown in what has proceeded that all this if only possible is assuredly for the best we have and now we say not only that
our laws if they could be enacted would be for the best but also that the enactment of them though difficult is not impossible very good and so with pain and toil we have reached the end of one subject but more remains to be discussed how and by what studies and Pursuits will the saviors of the Constitution be created and at what ages are they to apply themselves to their several studies certainly I omitted the Troublesome business of the possession of women and the procreation of children and the appointment of the rulers because I knew that
the perfect state would be eyed with jealousy and was difficult of attainment but that piece of cleverness was not of much service to me for I had to discuss them all the same the women and children are now disposed of but the other question of the rulers must be investigated from the very beginning we were saying as you will remember that they were to be lovers of their country Tried by the test of pleasures and pains and neither in hardships nor in dangers nor at any other critical moment were to lose their patriotism he was
to be rejected who failed but he who always came forth pure like gold tried in the refiners fire was to be made a ruler and to receive honors and rewards in life and after death this was the sort of thing which was being said and then the argument turned aside and veiled her face not liking to stir the question which has now Arisen I perfectly remember he said yes my friend I said and I then shrank from hazarding the Bold word but now let me dare to say that the perfect Guardian must be a philosopher
yes he said let that be affirmed and do not suppose that there will be many of them for the gifts which were deemed by us to be essential rarely grow together they are mostly found in shreds and patches what do you mean he said you are aware I replied that quick intelligence memory sagacity cleverness and similar qualities do not often grow together and that persons who possess them and are at the same time high-spirited and magnanimous are not so constituted by Nature as to live orderly and in a peaceful and settled manner they are driven
Anyway by their impulses and all solid principle goes out of them very true he said on the other hand those steadfast Natures which can better be dependent upon which in a battle are impregnable to fear and immovable are equally immovable when there is anything to be learned they are always in a torpid State and are apt to yawn and go to sleep over any intellectual toil quite true and yet we were saying that both qualities were necessary and those to whom the higher education is to be imparted and who are to share in any office
or command certainly he said and will they be a class which is rarely found yes indeed then the aspirant must not only be tested in those labors and dangers and Pleasures which we mentioned before but there is another kind of probation which we did not mention he must be exercised also in many kinds of knowledge to see whether the soul will be able to endure the highest of all or will faint unto them as in any other studies and exercises yes he said you are quite right in testing him but what do you mean by
the highest of all knowledge you may remember I said that we divided the soul into three parts and distinguished the several Natures of Justice Temperance courage and wisdom indeed he said if I had forgotten I should not deserve to hear more and do you remember the word of caution which preceded the discussion of them to what do you refer we were saying if I am not mistaken that he who wanted to see them in their perfect Beauty must take a longer and more circuitous way at the end of which they would appear but that we
could add on a popular exposition of them on a level with the discussion which had preceded and you replied that such an exposition would be enough for you and so the inquiry was continued in what to me seemed to be a very inaccurate manner whether you were satisfied or not it is for you to say yes he said I thought and the others thought that you gave us a fair measure of truth but my friend I said a measure of such things which in any degree falls short of the whole truth is not fair measure
for nothing imperfect is the measure of anything although persons are too apt to be contented and think that they need search no further not an uncommon case when people are indolent yes I said and there cannot be any worse fault in a guardian of the state and of the laws true the guardian then I said must be required to take the longer circuit and toil at learning as well as at gymnastics or he will never reach the highest knowledge of all which as we were just now saying is his proper calling what he said is
there a knowledge still higher than this higher than Justice and the other virtues yes I said there is and of the virtues too we must behold not the outline merely as at present nothing short of the most finished picture should satisfy us when little things are elaborated with an Infinity of pains in order that they may appear in their full Beauty and utmost clearness how ridiculous that we should not think the highest truths worthy of attaining the highest accuracy a right Noble thought but do you suppose that we shall refrain from asking you what is
this highest knowledge nay I said ask if you will but I am certain that you have heard the answer many times and now you either do not understand me or as I rather think you are disposed to be Troublesome for you have often been told that the idea of good is the highest knowledge and that all other things become useful and advantageous only by their use of this you can hardly be ignorant that of this I was about to speak concerning which as you have often heard me say we know so little and without which
any other knowledge or possession of any kind will profit us nothing do you think that the possession of all other things is of any value if we do not possess the good or the knowledge of all other things if we have no knowledge of beauty and goodness assuredly not you are further aware that most people affirm pleasure to be the good but the finer sort of wits say it is knowledge yes and you are aware too that the latter cannot explain what they mean by knowledge but are obliged after all to say knowledge of the
good how ridiculous yes I said that they should begin by reproaching us with our ignorance of the good and then presume our knowledge of it for the good they Define to be knowledge of the good just as if we understood them when they use the term good this is of course ridiculous most true he said and those who make pleasure their good are an equal perplexity for they are compelled to admit that there are bad Pleasures as well as good certainly and therefore to acknowledge that bad and good are the same true there can be
no doubt about the numerous difficulties in which this question is involved there can be none further do we not see that many are willing to do or to have or to seem to be what is just an honorable without the reality but no one is satisfied with the appearance of good the reality is what they seek in the case of the good appearance is despised by everyone very true he said of this then which every soul of man pursues and makes the end of all his actions having a presentment that there is such an end
and yet hesitating because neither knowing the nature nor having the same Assurance of this as of other things and therefore losing whatever good there is in other things of a principle such and so great as this ought the best men in our state to whom everything is entrusted to be in the darkness of ignorance certainly not he said I am sure I said that he who does not know how the beautiful and the just are likewise good will be but a sorry guardian of them and I suspect that no one who is ignorant of the
good will have a true knowledge of them that he said is a shrewd suspicion of yours and if we only have a guardian who has this knowledge our state will be perfectly ordered of course he replied but I wish that you would tell me whether you conceive this supreme principle of the good to be knowledge or pleasure or different from either I I said I knew all along that a fastidious gentleman like you would not be contented with the thoughts of other people about these matters true Socrates but I must say that one who like
you has passed a lifetime in the study of philosophy should not be always repeating the opinions of others and never telling his own well but has anyone a right to say positively what he does not know not he said with the Assurance of positive certainty he has no right to do that but he may say what he thinks as a matter of opinion and do you not know I said that all mere opinions are bad and the best of them blind you would not deny that those who have any true notion without intelligence are only
like Blind Men Who feel their way along the road very true and do you wish to behold what is blind and crooked in base when others will tell you of brightness and Beauty still I must implore you Socrates said glaucom not to turn away just as you are reaching the goal if you will only give such an explanation of the good as you have already given of justice and Temperance and the other virtues we shall be satisfied yes my friend and I shall be at least equally satisfied but I cannot help fearing that I shall
fail and that my Indiscreet Zeal will bring ridicule upon me no sweet sirs let us not at present ask what is the actual nature of the good for to reach what is now in my thoughts would be an effort too great for me but of the child of the good who is likest him I would feign speak if I could be sure that you wish to hear otherwise not by all means he said tell us about the child and you shall remain in our debt for the account of the parent I do indeed wish I
replied that I could pay and you receive the account of the parent and not as now of The Offspring only take however this latter by way of interest and at the same time have a care that I do not render a false account although I have no intention of deceiving you yes we will take all the Care that we can proceed yes I said but I must first come to an understanding with you and remind you of what I have mentioned in the course of this discussion and at many other times what the old story
that there is a many beautiful and many good and so of other things which we describe and Define to all of them the term many is applied true he said and there is an absolute Beauty and an absolute good and of other things to which the term many is applied there is an absolute for they may be brought under a single idea which is called the essence of each very true the many as we say are seen but not known and the ideas are known but not seen exactly and what is the organ with which
we see the visible things the sight he said and with the hearing I said we here and with the other senses perceive the other objects of sense true but have you remarked that sight is by far the most costly and complex piece of workmanship which the artificer of the senses ever contrived no I never have he said then reflect has the ear or voice need of any third or additional nature in order that the one may be able to hear and the other to be heard nothing of the sort no indeed I replied and the
same is true of most if not all the other senses you would not say that any of them require such an addition certainly not but you see that without the addition of some other nature there is no seeing or being seen how do you mean sight being as I conceive in the eyes and he who has eyes wanting to see color being also present in them still unless there be a third nature specially adapted to the purpose the owner of the eyes will see nothing and the colors will be invisible of what nature are you
speaking of that which you term light I replied true he said Noble then is the bond which links together sight and visibility and great beyond other bonds by no small difference of nature for light is their bond and light is no ignoble thing nay he said the reverse of ignoble and which I said of the Gods in heaven would you say was the Lord of this element whose is that light which makes the eye to see perfectly and the visible to appear you mean the Sun as you and all mankind say may not the relation
of sight to this deity be described as follows how neither sight nor the eye in which sight resides is the sun no yet of all the organs of sense the eye is the most like the Sun by far the most like and the power which the eye possesses is a sort of effluence which is dispensed from the Sun exactly then the sun is not sight but the author of sight who is recognized by sight true he said and this is he whom I call the child of the good whom the good begat in his own
likeness to be in the visible World in relation to sight and the things of sight what the good is in the intellectual World in relation to mind and the things of mind will you be a little more explicit he said why you know I said that the eyes when a person directs them towards objects on which the light of day is no longer shining but the moon and stars only see dimly and are nearly blind they seem to have no clearness of vision in them very true but when they are directed towards objects on which
the sun shines they see clearly and there is sight in them certainly and the soul is like the eye when resting upon that on which truth and being Shine the soul perceives and understands and is radiant with intelligence but when turned towards the Twilight of becoming and perishing then she has opinion only and goes blinking about and is first of one opinion and then of another and seems to have no intelligence just so now that which imparts truth to the known and the power of knowing to the knower is what I would have you term
the idea of good and this you will deem to be the cause of Science and of Truth in so far as the latter becomes the subject of knowledge beautiful too as are both truth and knowledge you will be right in esteeming this other nature as more beautiful than either and as in the previous instance light and sight may be truly said to be like the sun and yet not to be the Sun so in this other sphere science and truth may be deemed to be like the good but not the good the good has a
place of honor yet higher What a Wonder of beauty that must be he said which is the author of Science and truth and yet surpasses them in Beauty for you surely cannot mean to say that pleasure is the good God forbid I replied but may I ask you to consider the image in another point of view in what point of view you would say would you not that the sun is not only the author of visibility in all visible things but of generation and nourishment and growth though he himself is not generation certainly in like
manner the good may be said to be not only the author of knowledge to All Things known but of their being in essence and yet the good is not essence but far exceeds Essence in dignity and Power glocken said with a ludicrous earnestness By the Light Of Heaven how amazing yes I said and the exaggeration may be set down to you for you made me utter my fancies and pray continue to utter them at any rate let us hear if there is anything more to be said about the similitude of the sun yes I said
there is a great deal more then omit nothing however slight I will do my best I said but I should think that a great deal will have to be omitted I hope not he said you have to imagine then that there are two ruling powers and that one of them is said over the intellectual world the other over the visible I do not say heaven lest you should fancy that I am playing upon the name Ur hanos or hatos may I suppose that you have this distinction of the visible and intelligible fixed in your mind
I have now take a line which has been cut into two unequal parts and divide each of them again in the same proportion and suppose the two main divisions to answer one to the visible and the other to the intelligible and then compare the subdivisions in respect of their clearness and want of clearness and you will find that the first section in the sphere of the visible consists of images and by images I mean in the first place shadows and in the second place Reflections in water and in solid smooth and Polished bodies and the
like do you understand yes I understand imagine now the other section of which this is only the resemblance to include the animals which we see and everything that grows or is made very good would you not admit that both the sections of this division have different degrees of truth and that the copy is to the original as the sphere of opinion is to the sphere of knowledge most undoubtedly next to consider the manner in which the sphere of the intellectual is to be divided in what Manner thus there are two subdivisions in the lower of
which the soul uses the figures given by the former division as images the inquiry can only be hypothetical and instead of going upwards to a principle descends to the other end in the higher of the two the soul passes out of hypotheses and goes up to a principle which is above hypotheses making no use of images as in the former case but proceeding only in and through the ideas themselves I do not quite understand your meaning he said then I will try again you will understand me better when I have made some preliminary remarks you
are aware that students of geometry arithmetic and the Kindred Sciences assume the odd and the even and the figures and three kinds of angles and the like in their several branches of science these are their hypotheses which they and everybody are supposed to know and therefore they do not deign to give any account of them either to themselves or others but they begin with them and go on until they arrive at last and in a consistent manner at their conclusion yes he said I know and do you not know also that although they make use
of the visible forms and reason about them they are thinking not of these but of the ideals which they resemble not of the figures which they draw but of the absolute square and the absolute diameter and so on the forms which they draw or make and which have shadows and Reflections in water of their own are converted by them into images but they are really seeking to behold the things themselves which can only be seen with the eye of the mind that is true and of this kind I spoke as the intelligible although in the
search after it the soul is compelled to use hypotheses not ascending to a first principle because she is unable to rise above the region of hypothesis but employing the objects of which the Shadows below are resemblances in their turn as images they having in relation to the shadows and reflections of them a greater distinctness and therefore a higher value I understand he said that you are speaking of the province of geometry and the sister arts and when I speak of the other division of the intelligible you will understand me to speak of that other sort
of knowledge which reason herself attains by the power of dialectic using the hypotheses not as first principles but only as hypotheses that is to say as steps and points of departure into a world which is above hypotheses in order that she may soar Beyond them to the first principle of the whole and clinging to this and then to that which depends on this by successive steps she descends again without the aid of any sensible object from ideas through ideas and in ideas she ends I understand you he replied not perfectly for you seem to me
to be describing a task which is really tremendous but at any rate I understand you to say that knowledge and being which the science of dialectic contemplates are clearer than the Notions of the Arts as they are termed which proceed from hypotheses only these are also contemplated by the understanding and not by the senses yet because they start from hypotheses and do not Ascend to a principle those who contemplate them appear to you not to exercise the higher reason upon them although when a first principle is added to them they are cognizable by the higher
reason and the Habit which is concerned with geometry and the cognate Sciences I suppose that you would term understanding and not reason as being intermediate between opinion and reason you have quite conceived my meaning I said and now corresponding to these four divisions let there be four faculties in the soul reason answering to the highest understanding to the second Faith or conviction to the third and perception of Shadows to the last and let there be a scale of them and let us suppose that the several faculties have clearness in the same degree that their objects
have truth I understand he replied and give my ascent and accept your Arrangement book seven and now I said let me show in a figure how far our nature is enlightened or unenlightened behold human beings living in an underground Den which has a mouth open towards the light and reaching all along the den here they have been from their childhood and have their legs and necks chained so that they cannot move and can only see before them being prevented by the chains from turning around their heads above and behind them a fire is blazing at
a distance and between the fire and the prisoners there is a raised way and you will see if you look a low wall built along the way like the screen which marionette players have in front of them over which they show the puppets I see and do you see I said men passing along the wall carrying all sorts of vessels and statues and figures of animals made of wood and stone and various materials which appear over the wall some of them are talking others silent you have shown me a strange image and they are strange
prisoners like ourselves I replied and they see only their own Shadows or the shadows of one another which the fire throws on the opposite wall of the cave true he said how could they see anything but the Shadows if they were never allowed to move their heads and of the objects which are being carried in like manner they would only see the Shadows yes he said and if they were able to converse with one another would they not suppose that they were naming what was actually before them very true and suppose further that the prison
had an echo which came from the other side would they not be sure to fancy when one of the passers-by spoke that the voice which they heard came from the passing Shadow no question he replied to them I said the truth would be literally nothing but the Shadows of the images that is certain and now look again and see what will naturally follow if the prisoners are released and disabused of their error at first when any of them is liberated and compelled suddenly to stand up and turn his neck round and walk and look towards
the light he will suffer sharp pains the glare will distress him and he will be unable to see the realities of which in his former State he had seen the Shadows and then conceive someone saying to him that what he saw before was an illusion but that now when he is approaching nearer to being and His Eye Is turned towards more real existence he has a clearer vision what will be his reply and you may further imagine that his instructor is pointing to the objects as they pass and requiring him to name them will he
not be perplexed will he not fancy that the Shadows which he formally saw are truer than the objects which are now shown to him far truer and if he is compelled to look straight at the light will he not have a pain in his eyes which will make him turn away to take refuge in the objects of vision which he can see and which he will conceive to be in reality clearer than the things which are now being shown to him true he said and suppose once more that he is reluctantly dragged up a steep
and rugged ascent and held fast until he is forced into the presence of the sun himself is he not likely to be pained and irritated when he approaches the light his eyes will be dazzled and he will not be able to see anything at all of what are now called realities not all in a moment he said he will require to grow accustomed to the sight of the upper world and first he will see the Shadows best next the reflections of men and other objects in the water and then the objects themselves then he will
gaze upon the light of the moon and the stars and the Spangled heaven and he will see the sky and the stars by Night better than the Sun or the light of the Sun by day certainly last of all he will be able to see the Sun and Not Mere reflections of him in the water but he will see him in his own proper place and not in another and he will contemplate him as he is certainly he will then proceed to argue that this is he who gives the season and the years and is
the guardian of all that is in the visible world and in a certain way the cause of all things which he and his fellows have been accustomed to behold clearly he said he would first see the Sun and then reason about him and when he remembered his old habitation and the wisdom of the den and his fellow prisoners do you not suppose that he would felicitate himself on the change and pity them certainly he would and if they were in the habit of conferring honors among themselves on those who were quickest to observe the passing
shadows and to remark which of them went before and which followed after and which were together and who were therefore best able to draw conclusions as to the Future do you think that he would care for such honors and glories or Envy the possessors of them would he not say with Homer better to be the poor servant of a poor master and to endure anything rather than think as they do and live after their manner yes he said I think that he would rather suffer anything than entertain these false Notions and live in this miserable
manner imagine once more I said such in one coming suddenly out of the sun to be replaced in his Old Situation would he not be certain to have his eyes full of Darkness to be sure he said and if there were a contest and he had to compete in measuring the Shadows with the prisoners who had never moved out of the den while his sight was still weak and before his eyes had become steady and the time which would be needed to acquire this new habit of sight might be very considerable would he not be
ridiculous men would say of him that up he went and down he came without his eyes and that it was better not even to think of ascending and if anyone tried to loose another and lead him up to the light let them only catch the offender and they would put him to death no question he said this entire allegory I said you may now append dear glocken to the previous argument the prison house is the world of sight the light of the fire is the Sun and you will not misapprehend me if you interpret the
journey upwards to be the ascent of the Soul into the intellectual world according to my poor belief which at your desire I have expressed whether rightly or wrongly God knows but whether true or false my opinion is that in the world of knowledge the idea of good appears last of all and is seen only with an effort and when seen is also inferred to be the universal author of all things beautiful and right parent of light and of the Lord of light in this visible world and the immediate source of reason and Truth in the
intellectual and that this is the power upon which he who would act rationally either in public or private life must have his eye fixed I agree he said as far as I'm able to understand you moreover I said you must not wonder that those who attain to this beatific Vision are unwilling to descend to human Affairs for their souls are ever hastening into the upper world where they desire to dwell which desire of theirs is very natural if our allegory may be trusted yes very natural and is there anything surprising in one who passes from
Divine contemplations to the evil state of man misbehaving himself in a ridiculous manner if while his eyes are blinking and before he has become accustomed to the surrounding Darkness he is compelled to fight in courts of law or in other places about the images or the shadows of images of justice and is endeavoring to meet the conceptions of those who have never yet seen absolute Justice anything but surprising he replied anyone who has Common Sense will remember that the bewilderments of the eyes are of two kinds and arise from two causes either from coming out
of the light or from going into the light which is true of the Mind's Eye quite as much as of the bodily eye and he who remembers this when he sees anyone whose vision is perplexed and weak will not be too ready to laugh he will first ask whether that soul of man has come out of the brighter life and is unable to see because unaccustomed to the dark or having turned from Darkness to the day is dazzled by excess of light and he will count the one happy in his condition and state of being
and he will pity the other or if you have a mind to laugh at the soul which comes from below into the light there will be more reason in this than in the Life which greets him who returns from above out of the light into the den that he said is a very just distinction but then if I am right certain professors of Education must be wrong when they say that they can put a knowledge into the soul which was not there before like sight into blind eyes they undoubtedly say this he replied whereas our
argument shows that the power and capacity of learning exists in the soul already and that just as the eye was unable to turn from Darkness to light without the whole body so too the instrument of knowledge can only by the movement of the whole soul be turned from the world of becoming into that of being and Learn by degrees to endure the sight of being and of the brightest and best of being or in other words of the good very true and must there not be some art which will affect conversion in the easiest and
quickest manner not implanting the faculty of sight for that exists already but has been turned in the wrong direction and is looking away from the truth yes he said such an art may be presumed and whereas the other so-called Virtues Of the Soul seem to be akin to bodily qualities for even when they are not originally innate they can be implanted later by habit and exercise the virtue of wisdom more than anything else contains a Divine element which always remains and by this conversion is rendered useful and profitable or on the other hand hurtful and
useless did you never observe the narrow intelligence flashing from the Keen Eye of a clever Rogue how eager he is how clearly his paltry Soul sees the way to his end he is the reverse of blind but his Keen eyesight is forced into the service of evil and he is mischievous in proportion to his cleverness very true he said but what if there had been a circumcision of such Natures in the days of their youth and they had been severed from those sensual Pleasures such as eating and drinking which like lead and weights were attached
to them at their birth and which dragged them down and turned the vision of their souls upon the things that are below if I say they had been released from these impediments and turned in the opposite direction the very same faculty in them would have seen the truth as keenly as they see what their eyes are turned to now very likely yes I said and there is another thing which is likely or rather a necessary inference from what has proceeded that neither the uneducated and uninformed of the truth nor yet those who never make an
end of their education will be able Ministers of State not the former because they have no single aim of Duty which is the rule of all their actions private as well as public nor the latter because they will not act at all except upon compulsion fancying that they are already dwelling apart in the island of the Blessed very true he replied then I said the business of us who are the founders of the state will be to compel the best Minds to attain that knowledge which we have already shown to be the greatest of all
they must continue to ascend until they arrive at the good but when they have ascended and seen enough we must not allow them to do as they do now what do you mean I mean that they remain in the upper world but this must not be allowed they must be made to descend again among the prisoners in the den and partake of their labors and honors whether they are worth having or not but is not this unjust he said ought we to give them a worse life when they might have a better you have again
forgotten my friend I said the intention of the legislator who did not aim at making anyone class in the state happy Above the Rest the happiness was to be in the whole state and he held the citizens together by persuasion and necessity making them benefactors of the state and therefore benefactors of one another to this end he created them not to please themselves but to be his instruments in binding up the state true he said I had forgotten observe glaucon that there will be no Injustice in compelling our philosophers to have a care and Providence
of others we shall explain to them that in other states men of their class are not obliged to share in the toils of politics and this is reasonable for they grow up at their own sweet will and the government would rather not have them being self-taught they cannot be expected to show any gratitude for a culture which they have never received but we have brought you into the world to be rulers of the hive Kings of yourselves and of the other citizens and have educated you far better and more perfectly than they have been educated
and you are better able to share in the double duty where for each of you when his turn comes must go down to the general underground Abode and get the habit of seeing in the dark when you have acquired The Habit you will see ten thousand times better than the inhabitants of the den and you will know what the several images are and what they represent because you have seen the beautiful and just and good in their truth and thus our state which is also yours will be a reality and not a dream only and
will be administered in a spirit unlike that of other states in which men fight with one another about Shadows only and are distracted in the struggle for power which in their eyes is a great good whereas the truth is that the state in which the rulers are most reluctant to govern is always the best and most quietly governed and the state state in which they are most eager the worst quite true he replied and will our pupils when they hear this refuse to take their turn at the toils of State when they are allowed to
spend the greater part of their time with one another in the Heavenly light impossible he answered for they are just men and the commands which we impose upon them are just there can be no doubt that every one of them will take office as a Stern necessity and not after the fashion of our present rulers of State yes my friend I said and there lies the point you must contrive for your future rulers another and a better life than that of a ruler and then you may have a well-ordered state for only in the state
which offers this will they rule who are truly rich not in silver and gold but in virtue and wisdom which are the true blessings of life whereas if they go to the administration of public affairs poor and hungering after their own private Advantage thinking that hence they are to snatch the chief good order there can never be for they will be fighting about office and the civil and domestic broils which thus arise will be the ruin of the rulers themselves and of the whole state most true he replied and the only life which looks down
upon the life of political ambition is that of true philosophy do you know of any other indeed I do not he said and those who govern ought not to be lovers of the task for if they are there will be rival lovers and they will fight no question who then are those whom we shall compel to be Guardians surely they will be the men who are wisest about Affairs of state and by whom the state is best administered and who at the same time have other honors and another and a better life than that of
politics they are the men and I will choose them he replied and now shall we consider in what way such Guardians will be produced and how they are to be brought from Darkness to light as some are said to have ascended from the world below to the gods by all means he replied the process I said is not the turning over of an oyster shell in allusion to a game in which two parties fled or pursued according as an oyster shell which was thrown into the air fell with the dark or light side Uppermost but
the Turning round of a soul passing from a day which is little better than night to the true day of being that is the ascent From Below which we affirm to be true philosophy quite so and should we not inquire what sort of knowledge has the power of affecting such a change certainly what sort of knowledge is there which would draw the soul from becoming to being and another consideration has just occurred to me you will remember that our young men are to be Warrior athletes yes that was said then this new kind of knowledge
must have an additional quality what quality usefulness in war yes if possible there were two parts in our former scheme of Education whether or not just so there was gymnastic which presided over the growth and decay of the body and may therefore be regarded as having to do with generation and Corruption true then that is not the knowledge which we are seeking to discover no but what do you say of Music which also entered to a certain extent into our former scheme music he said as you will remember was the counterpart of gymnastic and trained
the Guardians by the influences of habit by Harmony making them Harmonious by Rhythm rhythmical but not giving them science and the words whether fabulous or possibly true had Kindred elements of Rhythm and Harmony in them but in music there was nothing which tended to that good which you are now seeking you are most accurate I said in your recollection in music there certainly was nothing of the kind but what branch of knowledge is there my dear glocong which is of the desired nature since all the useful Arts were reckoned mean by us undoubtedly and yet
if music and Gymnastic are excluded and the Arts are also excluded what remains well I said there may be nothing left of our special subjects and then we shall have to take something which is not special but of universal application what may that be a something which all Arts and Sciences and intelligences use in common and which everyone first has to learn among the elements of Education what is that the little matter of distinguishing one two and three in a word number and calculation do not all Arts and Sciences necessarily partake of them yes then
the Art of War partakes of them to be sure then palamides whenever he appears in tragedy proves Agamemnon ridiculously unfit to be a general did you never remark how he declares that he had invented number and had numbered the ships and set an array the ranks of the army at Troy which implies that they had never been numbered before and Agamemnon must be supposed literally to have been incapable of counting his own feet how could he if he was ignorant of number and if that is true what sort of General must he have been I
should say a very strange one if this was as you say can we deny that a warrior should have a knowledge of arithmetic certainly he should if he is to have the smallest understanding of military tactics or indeed I should rather say if he is to be a man at all I should like to know whether you have the same notion which I have of this study what is your notion it appears to me to be a study of the kind which we are seeking and which leads naturally to reflection but never to have been
rightly used for the true use of it is simply to draw the soul towards being will you explain your meaning he said I will try I said and I wish you would share the inquiry with me and say yes or no when I attempt to distinguish in my own mind what branches of knowledge have this attracting power in order that we may have clearer proof that arithmetic is as I suspect one of them explain he said I mean to say that objects of sense are of two kinds some of them do not invite thought because
the sense is an adequate judge of them while in the case of other objects senses so untrustworthy that further inquiry is imperatively demanded you are clearly referring he said to the manner in which the senses are imposed upon by distance and by painting in light and shade no I said that is not at all my meaning then what is your meaning when speaking of uninviting objects I mean those which do not pass from one sensation to the opposite inviting objects are those which do in this latter case the sense coming upon the object whether at
a distance or near gives no more Vivid idea of anything in particular than of its opposite an illustration will make my meaning clearer here are three fingers a little finger a second finger and a middle finger very good you may suppose that they are seen quite close and here comes the point what is it each of them equally appears a finger whether seen in the middle or at the extremity whether white or black or thick or thin it makes no difference a finger is a finger all the same in these cases a man is not
compelled to ask of thought the question what is a finger for the sight never Intimates to the mind that a finger is other than a finger true and therefore I said as we might expect there is nothing here which invites or excites intelligence there is not he said but is this equally true of the greatness and smallness of the fingers can cite adequately perceive them and is no difference made by the circumstance that one of the fingers is in the middle and another at the extremity and in like manner does the touch adequately perceive the
qualities of thickness or thinness of softness or hardness and so of the other senses do they give perfect intimations of such matters is not their mode of operation on this wise the sense which is concerned with the quality of of hardness is necessarily concerned also with the quality of softness and only Intimates to the soul that the same thing is felt to be both hard and soft you are quite right he said and must not the soul be perplexed at this intimation which the sense gives of a heart which is also soft what again is
the meaning of light and heavy if that which is light is also heavy and that which is heavy light yes he said these intimations which the soul receives are very curious and required to be explained yes I said and in these perplexities the soul naturally summons to her Aid calculation and intelligence that she may see whether the several objects announced to her are one or two true and if they turn out to be two is not each of them one and different certainly and if each is one and both are two she will conceive the
two as in a state of division for if they were undivided they could only be conceived of as one true the eye certainly did see both small and great but only in a confused manner they were not distinguished yes whereas the thinking mind intending to light up the chaos was compelled to reverse the process and look at small and great as separate and not confused very true was not this the beginning of the inquiry what is great and what is small exactly so and thus arose the distinction of the visible and the intelligible most true
this was what I meant when I spoke of Impressions which invited the intellect or the reverse those which are simultaneous with opposite Impressions invite thought those which are not simultaneous do not I understand he said and agree with you and to which class do unity and number belong I do not know he replied think a little and you will see that what has preceded will supply the answer for if simple Unity could be adequately perceived by the site or by any other sense then as we were saying in the case of the finger there would
be nothing to attract towards being but when there is some contradiction always present and one is the reverse of one and involves the conception of plurality then thought begins to be aroused within us and the Soul perplexed and wanting to arrive at a decision asks what is absolute Unity this is the way in which the study of the one has a power of drawing and converting the mind to the contemplation of true being and surely he said this occurs notably in the case of one for we see the same thing to be both one and
infinite in multitude yes I said and this being true of one must be equally true of all number certainly and all arithmetic and calculation have to do with number yes and they appear to lead the Mind towards truth yes in a very remarkable manner then this is knowledge of the kind for which we are seeking having a double use military and philosophical for the man of war must learn the art of number or he will not know how to array his troops and the philosopher also because he has to rise out of the Sea of
change and lay hold of true being and therefore he must be an arithmetician that is true and our Guardian is both Warrior and philosopher certainly then this is a kind of knowledge which legislation May fitly prescribe and we must Endeavor to persuade those who are to be the Principal men of our state to go and learn arithmetic not as amateurs but they must carry on the study until they see the nature of numbers with the mind only nor again like merchants or retail Traders with a view to buying or selling but for the sake of
their military use and of the Soul herself and because this will be the easiest way for her to pass from becoming to truth and being that is excellent he said yes I said and now having spoken of it I must add how Charming the science is and in how many ways it conduces to our desired end if pursued in the spirit of a philosopher and not of a shopkeeper how do you mean I mean as I was saying that arithmetic has a very great and elevating effect compelling the soul to reason about abstract number and
rebelling against the introduction of visible or tangible objects into the argument you know how steadily the masters of the art repel and ridicule anyone who attempts to divide absolute Unity when he is calculating and if you divide they multiply meaning either one that they integrate the number because they deny the possibility of fractions or two that division is regarded by them as a process of multiplication for the fractions of one continue to be units taking care that one shall continue one and not become lost in fractions that is very true now suppose a person were
to say to them oh my friends what are these wonderful numbers about which you are reasoning in which as you say there is a Unity such as you demand and each unit is equal invariable indivisible what would they answer they would answer as I should conceive that they were speaking of those numbers which can only be realized in thought then you see that this knowledge may be truly called necessary necessitating as it clearly does the use of the pure intelligence in the attainment of pure truth yes that is a marked characteristic of it and have
you further observed that those who have a natural talent for calculation are generally quick at every other kind of knowledge and even the dull if they have had an arithmetical training although they may derive no other Advantage from it always become much quicker than they would otherwise have been very true he said and indeed you will not easily find a more difficult study and not many is difficult you will not and for all these reasons arithmetic is a kind of knowledge in which the best nature should be trained and which must not be given up
I agree let this then be made one of our subjects of education and next shall we inquire whether the Kindred science also concerns us you mean geometry exactly so clearly he said we are concerned with that part of geometry which relates to war for in pitching a camp or taking up a position or closing or extending the lines of an army or any other military maneuver whether in actual battle or on a March it will make all the difference whether a general is or is not a geometrician yes I said but for that purpose a
very little of either geometry or calculation will be enough the question relates rather to the greater and more advanced part of geometry whether that tends in any degree to make more easy the vision of the idea of good and thither as I was saying all things tend which compel the soul to turn her gaze towards that place where is the full Perfection of being which she ought by all means to behold true he said then if geometry compels us to view being it concerns us if becoming only it does not concern us yes that is
what we assert yet anybody who has the least acquaintance with geometry will not deny that such a conception of the science is in flat contradiction to the ordinary language of geometricians how so they have in view practice only and are always speaking in a narrow and ridiculous manner of squaring and extending and applying and the like they confuse the necessities of geometry with those of daily life whereas knowledge is the real object of the whole science certainly he said then must not a further admission be made what admission that the knowledge at which geometry aims
is knowledge of the Eternal and not of ought perishing and transient that he replied may be readily allowed and is true then my Noble friend geometry will draw the soul towards truth and create the spirit of philosophy and raise up that which is now unhappily allowed to fall down nothing will be more likely to have such an effect then nothing should be more sternly laid down than that the inhabitants of your fair City should by all means learn geometry moreover the science has indirect effects which are not small of what kind he said there are
the military advantages of which you spoke I said and in all Departments of knowledge as experience proves anyone who has studied geometry is infinitely quicker of apprehension than one who is not yes indeed he said there is an infinite difference between them then shall we propose this as a second branch of knowledge which our youth will study let us do so he replied and suppose we make astronomy the third what do you say I am strongly inclined to it he said the observation of the seasons and of months and years is as essential to the
general as it is to the farmer or sailor I am amused I said at your fear of the world which makes you guard against the appearance of insisting upon useless studies and I quite admit the difficulty of believing that in every man there is an eye of the Soul which when by other Pursuits lost and dimmed is by these purified and re-illumined and is more precious far than ten thousand bodily eyes for by it alone is truth seen now there are two classes of persons one class of those who will agree with you and will
take your words as a revelation another class to whom they will be utterly unmeaning and who will naturally deem them to be idle tales for they see no sort of prophet which is to be obtained from them and therefore you had better decide at once with which of the two you are proposing to argue you will very likely say with neither and that your chief aim in carrying on the argument is your own Improvement at the same time you do not Grudge to others any benefit which they may receive I think that I should prefer
to carry on the argument mainly on my own behalf then take a step backward for we have gone wrong in the order of the Sciences what was the mistake he said after playing geometry I said we proceeded at once to solids in Revolution instead of taking solids in themselves whereas after the second dimension the third which is concerned with cubes and dimensions of depth ought to have followed yes I said and you placed astronomy next and then you made a step backward yes and I have delayed You by my hurry the ludicrous state of solid
geometry which in natural order should have followed made me pass over this branch and go on to astronomy or motion of solids true he said then assuming that the Science Now omitted would come into existence if encouraged by the state let us go on to astronomy which will be fourth the right order he replied and now Socrates as you rebuke the vulgar manner in which I praised astronomy before my praise shall be given in your own spirit for everyone as I think must see that astronomy compels the soul to look upwards and leads us from
this world to another everyone but myself I said to everyone else this may be clear but not to me and what then would you say I should rather say that those who Elevate astronomy into philosophy appear to me to make us look downwards and not upwards what do you mean he asked you I replied having your mind a truly Sublime conception of our knowledge of the things above and I dare say that if a person were to throw his head back and study the fretted ceiling you would still think that his mind was the precipient
and not his eyes and you are very likely right and I may be a simpleton but in my opinion that knowledge only which is a being and of the Unseen can make the soul look upwards and whether a man gapes at the heavens or blinks on the ground seeking to learn some particular of sense I would deny that he can learn for nothing of that sort is matter of science his soul is looking downwards not upwards whether his way to knowledge is by water or by land whether he Floats or only lies on his back
I acknowledge he said the justice of your rebuke still I should like to ascertain how astronomy can be learned in any manner more conducive to that knowledge of which we are speaking I will tell you I said the starry Heaven which we behold is wrought upon a visible ground and therefore although the fairest and most perfect of visible things must necessarily be deemed inferior far to the true motions of absolute swiftness and absolute slowness which are relative to each other and carry with them that which is contained in them in the true number and in
every true figure now these are to be apprehended by reason and intelligence but not by sight true he replied The Spangled Heavens should be used as a pattern and with a view to that higher knowledge their beauty is like the beauty of figures or pictures excellently wrought by the hand of Daedalus or some other great artist which we may chance to behold any geometrician who saw them would appreciate the exquisiteness of their workmanship but he would never dream of thinking that in them he could find the true equal or the true double or the truth
of any other proportion no he replied such an idea would be ridiculous and will not a true astronomer have the same feeling when he looks at the movements of the Stars will he not think that heaven and the things in heaven are framed by the creator of them in the most perfect manner but he will never imagine that the proportions of Night and Day or of both to the month or of the month to the year or of the Stars to these and to one another and any other things that are material and visible can
also be Eternal and subject to no deviation that would be absurd and it is equally absurd to take so much pains in investigating their exact truth I quite agree though I never thought of this before then I said in astronomy as in Geometry we should employ problems and let the heavens alone if we would approach the subject in the right way and so make the natural gift of reason to be of any real use that he said is a work infinitely beyond our present astronomers yes I said and there are many other things which must
also have a similar extension given to them if our legislation is to be of any value but can you tell me of any other suitable study no he said not without thinking motion I said has many forms and not one only two of them are obvious enough even to wits no better than ours and there are others as I imagine which may be left to wiser persons but where are the two there is a second I said which is the counterpart of the one already named and what may that be the second I said would
seem relatively to the ears to be what the first is to the eyes for I conceive that as the eyes are designed to look up at the stars so are the ears to hear harmonious motions and these are sister Sciences as the pythagoreans say and we Glock and agree with them yes he replied but this I said is a laborious study and therefore we had better go and learn of them and they will tell us whether there are any other applications of these Sciences at the same time we must not lose sight of our own
higher object what is that there is a Perfection which all knowledge ought to reach and which our pupils ought also to attain and not to fall short of as I was saying that they did in astronomy for in the science of Harmony as you probably know the same thing happens the teachers of Harmony compare the sounds and consonances which are heard only and their labor like that of the astronomers is in vain yes by Heaven he said and is as good as a play to hear them talking about their condensed notes as they call them
they put their ears close alongside of the strings like persons catching a sound from their neighbor's wall one set of them declaring that they distinguish an intermediate note and have found the least interval which should be the unit of measurement the others insisting that the two sounds have passed into the same either party setting their ears before their understanding you mean I said those gentlemen who tease and torture the strings and rack them on the pegs of the instrument I might carry on the metaphor and speak after their manner of the blows which the plectrum
gives and make accusations against the strings both of backwardness and forwardness to sound but this would be tedious and therefore I will only say that these are not the men and that I am referring to the pythagoreans of whom I was just now proposing to inquire about Harmony for they too are in error like the astronomers they investigate the numbers of the harmonies which are heard but they never attain to problems that is to say they never reach the natural harmonies of number or reflect why some numbers are harmonious and others not that he said
is a thing of more than mortal knowledge a thing I replied which I would rather call useful that is if sought after with a view to the beautiful and good but if pursued in any other Spirit useless very true he said now when all these studies reach the point of intercommunion and connection with one another and come to be considered in their Mutual affinities then I think but not till then will the pursuit of them have a value for our objects otherwise there is no prophet in them I suspect so but you are speaking Socrates
of a vast work what do you mean I said the Prelude or what do you not know that all this is but the Prelude to the actual strain which we have to learn for you surely would not regard the skilled mathematician as a dialectician assuredly not he said I have hardly ever known a mathematician who was capable of reasoning but do you imagine that men who are unable to give and take a reason will have the knowledge which we require of them neither can this be supposed and so glocken I said we have at last
arrived at the hymn of dialectic this is that strain which is of the intellect only but which The Faculty of sight will nevertheless be found to imitate for sight as you may remember was imagined by us after a while to behold the real animals and stars and last of all the sun himself and so with dialectic when a person starts on the discovery of the absolute by the light of Reason only and without any assistance of sense and perseveres until by pure intelligence he arrives at the perception of the absolute good he at last finds
himself at the end of the intellectual world as in the case of sight at the end of the visible exactly he said then this is the progress which you call dialectic true but the release of the prisoners from chains and their translation from the Shadows to the images and to the light and the ascent From The Underground Den to the sun while in his presence they are vainly trying to look on animals and plants in the light of the Sun but are able to perceive even with their weak eyes the images in the water which
are Divine and are the shadows of true existence not Shadows of images cast by a light of fire which compared with the sun is only an image this power of elevating the highest principle in the soul to the contemplation of that which is best in existence with which we may compare the raising of that faculty which is the very light of the body to the sight of that which is brightest in the material and visible world this power is given as I was saying by all that study and pursuit of the Arts which has been
described I agree in what you are saying he replied which may be hard to believe yet from another point of view is harder still to deny this however is not a theme to be treated of in passing only but will have to be discussed again and again and so whether our conclusion be true or false let us assume all this and proceed at once from the Prelude or preamble to the chief strain a play upon the Greek word which means both law and strain and describe that in like manner say then what is the nature
and what are the divisions of dialectic and what are the paths which lead thither for these paths will also lead to our final rest dear glaucom I said you will not be able to follow me here though I would do my best and you should behold not an image only but the absolute truth according to my notion whether what I told you would or would not have been a reality I cannot venture to say but you would have seen something like reality of that I am confident doubtless he replied but I must also remind you
that the power of dialectic alone can reveal this and only to one who is a disciple of the previous Sciences of that assertion you may be as confident as of the last and assuredly no one will argue that there is any other method of comprehending by any regular process all true existence or of ascertaining what each thing is in its own nature for the Arts in general are concerned with the desires or opinions of men or are cultivated with a view to production and construction or for the preservation of such Productions and constructions and as
to the mathematical Sciences which as we were saying have some apprehension of true being geometry and the like they only dream about being but never can they behold the waking reality so long as they leave the hypotheses which they use unexamined and are unable to give an account of them for when a man knows not his own first principle and when the conclusion and intermediate steps are also constructed out of he knows not what how can he imagine that such a fabric of convention can ever become science impossible he said then dialectic and dialectic alone
goes directly to the first principle and is the only science which does away with hypotheses in order to make her ground secure the Eye Of the Soul which is literally buried in an outlandish Slough is by her gentle Aid lifted upwards and she uses as handmaids and helpers in the work of conversion The Sciences which we have been discussing custom terms than Sciences but they ought to have some other name implying greater clearness than opinion and less clearness than science and this in our previous sketch was called understanding but why should we dispute about names
when we have realities of such importance to consider why indeed he said when any name will do which expresses the thought of the mind with clearness at any rate we are satisfied as before to have four divisions two for intellect and two for opinion and to call the first division science the second understanding the third belief and the fourth perception of Shadows opinion being concerned with becoming and intellect with being and so to make a proportion as being is to becoming so is pure intellect to opinion and as intellect is to opinion so is science
to believe and understanding to the perception of Shadows but let us defer the further correlation and subdivision of the subjects of opinion and of intellect for it will be a long inquiry many times longer than this has been as far as I understand he said I agree and do you also agree I said in describing the dialectician as one who attains a conception of the essence of each thing and he who does not possess and is therefore unable to impart this conception in whatever degree he fails May and that degree also be said to fail
in intelligence will you admit so much yes he said how can I deny it and you would say the same of the conception of the good until the person is able to abstract and Define rationally the idea of good and unless he can run the gauntlet of all objections and is ready to disprove them not by appeals to opinion but to absolute truth never faltering at any step of the argument unless he can do all this you would say that he knows neither the idea of good nor any other good he apprehends only a shadow
if anything at all all which is given by opinion and not by science dreaming and slumbering in this life before he is well awake here he arrives at the world below and has his final quietus in all that I should most certainly agree with you and surely you would not have the children of your ideal State whom you are nurturing and educating if the ideal ever becomes a reality you would not allow the future rulers to be like posts literally lines probably the starting point of a race course having no reason in them and yet
to be set in authority over the highest matters certainly not then you will make a law that they shall have such an education as will enable them to attain the greatest skill in asking and answering questions yes he said you and I together will make it dialectic then as you will agree is the coping Stone of the sciences and is set over them no other science can be placed higher the nature of knowledge can no further go I agree he said but to whom we are to assign these studies and in what way they are
to be assigned are questions which remain to be considered yes clearly you remember I said how the rulers were chosen before certainly he said the same Natures must still be chosen and the preference again given to the surest and the bravest and if possible to the fairest and having Noble and generous tempers they should also have the natural gifts which will facilitate their education and what are these such gifts as keenness and ready powers of acquisition for the mind more often faints from the severity of study than from the severity of gymnastics the toil is
more entirely the mind's own and is not shared with the body very true he replied further he of whom we are in search should have a good memory and be an unwaryed solid man who is a lover of Labor in any line or he will never be able to endure the great amount of bodily exercise and to go through all the intellectual discipline and study which we require of him certainly he said he must have natural gifts the mistake at present is that those who study philosophy have no vocation and this as I was before
saying is the reason why she has fallen into disrepute her true Sons should take her by the hand and not bastards what do you mean in the first place her voterie should not have a lame or halting industry I mean that he should not be half industrious and half idle as for example when a man is a lover of gymnastic and hunting and all other bodily exercises but a hater rather than a lover of the labor of learning or listening or inquiring or the occupation to which he devotes himself may be of an opposite kind
and he may have the other sort of lameness certainly he said and as to truth I said is not a soul equally to be deemed Halt and lame which hates voluntary falsehood and is extremely indignant at herself and others when they tell lies but is patient of involuntary falsehood and does not mind wallowing like a swineish beast in the mire of ignorance and has no shame at being detected to be sure and again in respect of temperance courage magnificence and every other virtue should we not carefully distinguish between the true son and the bastard for
where there is no discernment of such qualities States and individuals unconsciously air and the state makes a ruler and the individual a friend of one who being defective in some part of virtue is in a figure lame or a bastard that is very true he said all these things then will have to be carefully considered by us and if only Those whom we introduce to this vast system of Education and Training are sound in body and mind Justice herself will have nothing to say against us and we shall be the saviors of the Constitution and
of the state but if our pupils are men of another stamp the reverse will happen and we shall pour a still greater flood of ridicule on philosophy than she has to endure at present that would not be creditable certainly not I said and yet Perhaps in thus turning just into Earnest I am equally ridiculous in what respect I had forgotten I said that we were not serious and spoke with too much excitement for when I saw philosophy so undeservedly Trampled Under Foot of men I could not help feeling a sort of indignation at the authors
of her disgrace and my anger made me too vehement indeed I was listening and did not think so but I who am the speaker felt that I was and now let me remind you that although in our former selection we chose old men we must not do so in this Solon was under a delusion when he said that a man when he grows old May learn many things for he can no more learn much than he can run much youth is the time for any extraordinary toil of course and therefore calculation and geometry and all
the other elements of instruction which are a preparation for dialectic should be presented to the mind in childhood not however under any notion of forcing our system of Education why not because a Freeman ought not to be a slave in the acquisition of knowledge of any kind bodily exercise when compulsory does no harm to the body but knowledge which is acquired under compulsion obtains no hold on the Mind very true then my good friend I said do not use compulsion but let Early Education be a sort of amusement you will then be better able to
find out the natural bent that is a very rational notion he said do you remember that the children too were to be taken to see the battle on Horseback and that if there were no danger they were to be brought close up and like young hounds have a taste of blood given them yes I remember the same practice may be followed I said in all these things Labor's lessons dangers and he who is most at home in all of them ought to be enrolled in a select number at what age at the age when the
necessary gymnastics are over the period weather of two or three years which passes in this sort of training is useless for any other purpose for sleep and exercise are unpropicious to learning and the trial of who is first in gymnastic exercises is one of the most important tests to which our youth are subjected certainly he replied after that time those who are selected from the class of 20 years old will be promoted to higher honor and the Sciences which they learned without any order in their Early Education will now be brought together and they will
be able to see the natural relationship of them to one another and to True being yes he said that is the only kind of knowledge which takes lasting root yes I said and the capacity for such knowledge is the great Criterion of dialectical Talent the comprehensive mind is always the dialectical I agree with you he said these I said are the points which you must consider and those who have most of this comprehension and who are most steadfast in their learning and in their military and other appointed duties when they have arrived at the age
of 30 have to be chosen by you out of the select class and elevated to higher honor and you will have to prove them by the help of dialectic in order to learn which of them is able to give up the use of sight and the other senses and in company with truth to attain absolute being and here my friend great caution is required why great caution do you not remark I said how great is the evil which dialectic has introduced what evil he said the students of the art are filled with lawlessness quite true
he said do you think that there is anything so very unnatural or inexcusable in their case or will you make allowance for them in what way make allowance I want you I said by way of parallel to imagine a suppositious son who is brought up in great wealth he is one of a great and numerous family and has many flatterers when he grows up to manhood he learns that his alleged are not his real parents but who the real are he is unable to discover can you guess how he will be likely to behave towards
his flatterers and his supposed parents first of all during the period when he is ignorant of the false relation and then again when he knows or shall I guess for you if you please then I should say that while he is ignorant of the truth he will be likely to honor his father and his mother and his supposed relations more than the flatterers he will be less inclined to neglect them when in need or to do or say anything against them and he will be less willing to disobey them in any important matter he will
but when he has made the discovery I should imagine that he would diminish his honor and regard for them and would become more devoted to the flatterers their influence over him would greatly increase he would now live after their ways and openly associate with them and unless he were of an unusually good disposition he would trouble himself know more about his supposed parents or other relations well all that is very probable but how is the image applicable to the Disciples of philosophy in this way you know that there are certain principles about Justice and honor
which were taught us in childhood and under their parental Authority we have been brought up obeying and honoring them that is true there are also opposite maxims and habits of pleasure which flatter and attract the soul but do not influence those of us who have any sense of of right and they continue to obey and honor the maxims of their fathers true now when a man is in this state and the questioning Spirit asks what is fair or honorable and he answers as the legislator has taught him and then arguments many and diverse refute his
words until he is driven into believing that nothing is Honorable any more than dishonorable or just and good any more than the reverse and so of all the Notions which he most valued do you think that he will still honor and obey them as before impossible and when he ceases to think them honorable and natural is heretofore and he fails to discover the true can he be expected to pursue any life other than that which flatters his desires he cannot and from being a keeper of the law he is converted into a breaker of it
unquestionably now all this is very natural in students of philosophy such as I have described and also as I was just now saying most excusable yes he said and I may add pitiable therefore that your feelings may not be moved to pity about our citizens who are now 30 years of age every care must be be taken in introducing them to dialectic certainly there is a danger lest they should taste the deer Delight too early for youngsters as you may have observed when they first get the taste in their mouths argue for amusement and are
always contradicting and refuting others in Imitation of those who refute them like puppy dogs they rejoice in pulling and tearing at all who come near them yes he said there is nothing which they like better and when they have made many conquests and receive defeats at the hands of many they violently and speedily get into a way of not believing anything which they believed before and hence not only they but philosophy in all that relates to it is apt to have a bad name with the rest of the world too true he said but when
a man begins to get older he will no longer be guilty of such Insanity he will imitate the dialectician who is seeking for truth and not the aristic who is contradicting for the sake of amusement and the greater moderation of his character will increase instead of diminishing the honor of the pursuit very true he said and did we not make special provision for this when we said that the Disciples of philosophy were to be orderly and steadfast not as now any chance aspirant or Intruder very true suppose I said the study of philosophy to take
the place of gymnastics and to be continued diligently and earnestly and exclusively for twice the number of years which were passed in bodily exercise will that be enough would you say six or four years he asked say five years I replied at the end of the time they must be sent down again into the den and compelled to hold any military or other office which young men are qualified to hold in this way they will get their experience of life and there will be an opportunity of trying whether when they are drawn all manner of
ways by Temptation they will stand firm or Flinch and how long is this stage of their lives to last 15 years I answered and when they have reached 50 years of age then let those who still survive and have distinguished themselves in every action of their lives and in every branch of knowledge come at last to their consummation the time has now arrived at which they must raise the eye of the soul to the universal light which lightens all things and behold the absolute good for that is the pattern According to which they are to
order the state and the lives of individuals and the remainder of their own lives also making philosophy their Chief Pursuit but when their turn comes toiling also at politics and ruling for the public good not as though they were performing some heroic action but simply as a matter of Duty and when they have brought up in each generation others like themselves and left them in their place to be governors of the state then they will depart to the islands of the blessed and dwell there and the city will give them public memorials and sacrifices and
honor them if the pythian Oracle consent as demigods but if not as in any case blessed and divine you are a sculptor Socrates and have made statues of our governors faultless in Beauty yes I said glaucon and of our governesses too for you must not suppose that what I've been saying applies to men only and not to women as far as their Natures can go there you are right he said since we have made them to share in all things like the men well I said and you would agree would you not that what has
been said about the state and the government is not a mere dream and although difficult not impossible but only possible in the way which has been supposed that is to say when the true philosopher kings are born in a state one or more of them despising the honors of this present World which they deem mean and worthless esteeming above all things right and the honor that Springs from right and regarding justice as the greatest and most necessary of all things whose ministers they are and whose principles will be exalted by them when they set in
order their own City how will they proceed they will Begin by sending out into the country all the inhabitants of the city who are more than 10 years old and will take possession of their children who will be unaffected by the habits of their parents these they will train in their own habits and laws I mean in the laws which we have given them and in this way the state and Constitution of which we were speaking will soonest and most easily attain happiness and the nation which has such a constitution will gain most yes that
will be the best way and I think Socrates that you have very well described how if ever such a constitution might come into being enough then of the perfect State and of the man who Bears its image there is no difficulty in seeing how we shall describe him there is no difficulty he replied and I agree with you in thinking that nothing more need be said book eight and so glaucon we have arrived at the conclusion that in the perfect State wives and children are to be in common and that all education and the Pursuits
of War and Peace are also to be common and the best philosophers and the Bravest Warriors are to be their kings that replied glocken has been acknowledged yes I said and we have further acknowledged that the governors when appointed themselves will take their soldiers and place them in houses such as we were describing which are common to all and contain nothing private or individual and about their property you remember what we agreed yes I remember that no one was to have any of the ordinary possessions of mankind they were to be Warrior athletes and Guardians
receiving from the other citizens in lieu of annual payment only their maintenance and they were to take care of themselves and of the whole state true I said and now that this division of our task is concluded let us find the point at which we digressed that we may return into the old path there is no difficulty in returning you implied then as now that you had finished the description of the state you said that such a state was good and that the man was good who answered to it although as now appears you had
more excellent things to relate both of state and man and you said further that if this was the true form then the others were false and of the false forms you said as I remember that there were four principal ones and that their defects and the defects of the individuals corresponding to them were worth examining when we had seen all the individuals and finally agreed as to who was the best and who was the worst of them we were to consider whether the best was not also the happiest and the worst the most miserable I
asked you what were the four forms of government of which you spoke and then Paula Marcus and Addie mantis put in their word and you began again and have found your way to the point at which we have now arrived your recollection I said is most exact then like a wrestler he replied you must put yourself again in the same position and let me ask the same questions and do you give me the same answer which you were about to give me then yes if I can I will I said I shall particularly wish to
hear what were the four constitutions of which you were speaking hat question I said is easily answered the four governments of which I spoke so far as they have distinct names are first those of Crete and Sparta which are generally applauded what is termed oligarchy comes next this is not equally approved and is a form of government which teams with evils thirdly democracy which naturally follows oligarchy although very different and lastly comes tyranny great and famous which differs from them all and is the fourth and worst disorder of a state I do not know do
you of any other Constitution which can be said to have a distinct character there are Lordships and principalities which are bought and sold and some other intermediate forms of government but these are non-descripts and may be found equally among Helene's and among barbarians yes he replied we certainly hear of many curious forms of government which exist among them do you know I said that governments vary as the dispositions of men vary and that there must be as many of the one as there are of the other for we cannot suppose that states are made of
oak and rock and not out of the human Natures which are in them and which in a figure turn the scale and draw other things after them yes he said the states are as the men are they grow out of human characters then if the Constitutions of states are five the dispositions of individual Minds will also be five certainly him who answers to aristocracy and whom we rightly call Justin good we have already described we have then let us now proceed to describe the inferior sort of natures being the contentious and ambitious who answer to
the Spartan polity also the oligarchical democratical and tyrannical let us place the most just by the side of the most unjust and when we see them we shall be able to compare the relative happiness or unhappiness of him who leads a life of pure Justice or pure Injustice the inquiry will then be completed and we shall know whether we ought to pursue Injustice as thracimicus advises or in accordance with the conclusions of the argument to prefer Justice certainly he replied we must do as you say shall we follow our old plan which we adopted with
a view to clearness of taking the state first and then proceeding to the individual and begin with the government of Honor I know of no name for such a government other than democracy or perhaps tymarki we will compare with this the like character in the individual and after that consider oligarchy and the oligarchical man and then again we will turn our attention to democracy and the democratical man and lastly we will go and view the city of tyranny and once more take a look into the tyrant's soul and try to arrive at a satisfactory decision
that way of viewing and judging of the matter will be very suitable first then I said let us inquire how democracy the government of Honor arises out of aristocracy the government of the best clearly all political changes originate in divisions of the actual governing power a government which is United however small cannot be moved very true he said in what way then will our city be moved and in what Manner will the two classes of auxiliaries and rulers disagree among themselves or with one another shall we after the manner of Homer pray the muses to
tell us how Discord first arose shall we imagine them in solemn mockery to play and jest with us as if we were children and to address us in a lofty tragic vein making believe to be an Earnest how would they address us after this manner a city which is thus constituted can hardly be shaken but seeing that everything which has a beginning has also an end even a constitution such as yours will not last forever but will in time be dissolved and this is the dissolution in plants that grow in the earth as well as
in animals that move on the Earth's surface fertility and sterility of soul and body occur when the circumferences of the circles of each are completed which in short-lived existences pass over a short space and in long-lived ones over a long space but to the knowledge of human fecundity and sterility all the wisdom and education of your rulers will not attain the laws which regulate them will not be discovered by an intelligence which is alloyed with sense but will escape them and they will bring children into the world when they ought not now that which is
of divine Birth has a period which is contained in a perfect number that is a cyclical number such as 6 which is equal to the sum of its divisors 1 2 3 so that when the circle or time represented by 6 is completed the Lesser times or rotations represented by one two three are also completed but the period of human birth is comprehended in a number in which first increments by involution and evolution are squared and Cubed obtaining three intervals and four terms of like and unlike waxing and waning numbers make all the terms commensurable
and agreeable to one another probably the numbers three four five six of which the three first equals sign the sides of the Pythagorean triangle the terms will then be three cubed 4 cubed 5 cubed which together equals signs six cubed equal sign 216. the base of these three with a third added four when combined with five twenty and raised to the third power furnaces two harmonies the first is square which is a hundred times as great 400 equals sine 4 x 100 or the first a square which is 100 x 100 equal sign ten thousand
the whole number will then be seventeen thousand five hundred equal sign a square of one hundred and an oblong of 100 by seventy five and the other a figure having one side equal to the former but oblong consisting of a hundred numbers squared upon rational diameters of a square that is emitting fractions the side of which is five seven X seven equals sign 49x100 equal sign 4900 each of them being less by 1 than the perfect square which includes the fractions SC 50 or less by or consisting of two numbers squared upon irrational diameters Etc
equal sign 100 for other explanations of the passage C introduction two perfect squares of irrational diameters of a square the side of which is five equals sine 50 plus 50 equals 100 and 100 cubes of 3 27 by 100 equals two thousand seven hundred plus four thousand nine hundred plus four hundred equals sign eight thousand now this number represents a geometrical figure which has control over the good and evil of births for when your Guardians are ignorant of the law of births and unite bride and bridegroom out of season the children will not be goodly
or fortunate and though only the best of them will be appointed by their predecessors still they will be unworthy to hold their father's places and when they come into power as Guardians they will soon be found to fail in taking care of us the muses first by undervaluing music which neglect will soon extend to gymnastic and hence the young men of your state will be less cultivated in the succeeding generation rulers will be appointed who have lost the guardian power of testing the metal of your different races which like Hessians are of gold and silver
and brass and iron and so iron will be mingled with silver and Brass with gold and hence there will arise dissimilarity and inequality and irregularity which Always and in all places are causes of hatred and War this the muses affirm to be the stock from which Discord has sprung wherever arising and this is their answer to us yes and we may assume that they answer truly why yes I said of course they answer truly how can the muses speak falsely and what do the users say next when Discord arose then the two races were drawn
different ways the iron and Brass fell to acquiring money and land and houses and gold and silver but the gold and silver races not wanting money but having the true riches in their own nature inclined towards virtue in the Ancient Order of things there was a battle between them and at last they agreed to distribute their land and houses among individual owners and they enslaved their friends and maintainers whom they had formally protected in the condition of Freeman and made of them subjects and servants and they themselves were engaged in war and in keeping a
watch against them I believe that you have rightly conceived the origin of the change and the new government which thus arises will be of a form intermediate between oligarchy and aristocracy very true such will be the change and after the change has been made how will they proceed clearly the new state being in a mean between oligarchy and the perfect state will partly follow one and partly the other and will also have some peculiarities true he said in the honor given to rulers in the abstinence of the warrior class from Agriculture handicrafts and trade in
general in the institution of common meals and in the attention paid to gymnastics and military training in all these respects this state will resemble the former true but in the fear of admitting philosophers to power because they are no longer to be had simple in Earnest but are made up of mixed elements and in turning from them to passionate and less complex characters who are by Nature fitted for war rather than peace and in the values set by them upon military stratagems and contrivances and in the waging of everlasting Wars this state will be for
the most part peculiar yes yes I said and Men of this stamp will be Covetous of money like those who live in oligarchies they will have a fierce secret longing after gold and silver which they will hoard in Dark Places having magazines and treasuries of their own for the deposit and concealment of them also castles which are just nests for their eggs and in which they will spend large sums on their wives or on any others whom they please that is most true he said and they are miserly because they have no means of openly
acquiring the money which they prize they will spend that which is another man's on the gratification of their desires stealing their pleasures and running away like children from the law their father they have been schooled not by gentle influences but by force for they have neglected her who is the true Muse the companion of reason and philosophy and have honored gymnastic more than music undoubtedly he said the form of government which you describe is a mixture of Good and Evil why there is a mixture I said but one thing and one thing only is predominantly
seen the spirit of contention and ambition and these are due to the prevalence of the passionate or spirited element assuredly He said such is the origin and such the character of this state which has been described in outline only the more perfect execution was not required for a sketch is enough to show the type of the most perfectly just and most perfectly unjust and to go through all the states and all the characters of men omitting none of them would be an interminable labor very true he replied now what man answers to this form of
government how did he come into being and what is he like I think said adamantis that in the spirit of contention which characterizes him he is not unlike our friend glockon perhaps I said he may be like him in that one point but there are other respects in which he is very different in what respects he should have more of self-assertion and be less cultivated and yet a friend of culture and he should be a good listener but no speaker such a person is apt to be rough with slaves unlike the educated man who is
too proud for that and he will also be courteous to Freeman and remarkably obedient to Authority he is a lover of power and a lover of Honor claiming to be a ruler not because he is eloquent or on any ground of that sort but because he is a soldier and has performed Feats of arms he is also a lover of gymnastic exercises and of the chase yes that is the type of character which answers to democracy such and one will despise riches only when he is young but as he gets older he will be more
and more attracted to them because he has a piece of the avaricious nature in him and is not single-minded towards virtue having lost his best Guardian who was that said adamantus philosophy I said tempered with music who comes and takes up her Abode in a man and is the only savior of his virtue throughout life good he said such I said is the democratical youth and he is like the democratical state exactly his origin is as follows he is often the young son of a brave father who dwells in an ill-governed city of which he
declines the honors and offices and will not go to law or exert himself in any way but is ready to waive his rights in order that he may Escape trouble and how does the Sun come into being the character of the sun begins to develop when he hears his mother complaining that her husband has no place in the government of which the consequence is that she has no precedence among other women further when she sees her husband not very eager about money and instead of battling and railing in the Law Courts or assembly taking whatever
happens to him quietly and when she observes that his thoughts always Center in himself while he treats her with very considerable indifference she is annoyed and says to her son that his father is only half a man and far too easy going adding all the other complaints about her own ill treatment which women are so fond of rehearsing yes said adamantis they give us plenty of them and their complaints are so like themselves and you know I said that the old servants also who are supposed to be attached to the family from time to time
talk privately in the same strain to the Sun and if they see anyone who owes money to his father or is wronging him in any way and he fails to prosecute them they tell the youth that when he grows up he must retaliate upon people of this sort and be more of a man than his father he has only to walk abroad and he hears and sees the same sort of thing those who do their own business in the city are called simpletons and held in no esteem while the busy bodies are honored and applauded
the result is that the young man hearing and seeing all these things hearing too the words of his father and having a nearer view of his way of life and making comparisons of him and others is drawn opposite ways while his father is watering and nourishing the rational principle in his soul the others are encouraging the passionate and repetitive and he being not originally of a bad nature but having kept bad company is at last brought by their joint influence to a middle point and gives up the kingdom which is within him to the middle
principle of contentiousness and passion and becomes arrogant and ambitious you seem to me to have described his origin perfectly then we have now I said the second form of government and the second type of character we have next let us look at another man who as escalus says is set over against another state or rather as our plan requires begin with the state by all means I believe that oligarchy follows next in order and what manner of government do you term oligarchy a government resting on evaluation of property in which the rich have power and
the poor man is deprived of it I understand he replied ought I not to begin by describing how the change from democracy to oligarchy arises yes well I said no eyes are required in order to see how the one passes into the other how the accumulation of gold in the treasury of private individuals is the ruin of democracy they invent illegal modes of expenditure for what do they or their wives care about the law yes indeed and then one seeing another Grow Rich seeks to rival him and thus the great mass of the citizens become
lovers of money likely enough and so they grow richer and richer and the more they think of making a fortune the less they think of virtue for when riches and virtue are placed together in the scales of the balance the one always Rises as the other Falls true and in proportion as riches and rich men are honored in the state virtue and The Virtuous are Dishonored clearly and what is honored is cultivated and that which has no honor is neglected that is obvious and so at last instead of loving contention and Glory men become lovers
of trade and money they honor and look up to the rich man and make a ruler of him and dishonor the poor man they do so they next proceed to make a law which fixes a sum of money as the qualification of citizenship the sum is higher in one place and lower in another as the oligarchy is more or less exclusive and they allow no one whose property falls below the amount fixed to have any share in the government these changes in the Constitution they affect by Force of Arms if intimidation has not already done
their work very true and this speaking generally is the way in which oligarchy is established yes he said but what are the characteristics of this form of government and what are the defects of which we were speaking first of all I said consider the nature of the qualification just think what would happen if Pilots were to be chosen according to their property and a poor man were refused permission to steer even though he were a better pilot you mean that they would shipwreck yes and is not this true of the government of anything I should
imagine so except a city or would you include a city nay he said the case of a city is the strongest of all in as much as the rule of a city is the greatest and most difficult of all this then will be the first great defect of oligarchy clearly and here is another defect which is quite as bad what defect the inevitable division such a state is not one but two states the one of poor the other of rich men and they are living on the same spot and always conspiring against one another that
surely is at least as bad another discreditable feature is that for a like reason they are incapable of carrying on any War either they arm the multitude and then they are more afraid of them than of the enemy or if they do not call them out in the hour of battle they are oligarchs indeed few to fight as they are few to rule and at the same time their fondness for money makes them unwilling to pay taxes how discreditable and as we said before under such a constitution the same persons have too many callings they
are husbandmen Tradesmen Warriors all-in-one does that look well anything but well there is another evil which is perhaps the greatest of all and to which this state first begins to be liable what evil a man may sell all that he has and another May acquire his property yet after the sale he may dwell in the city of which he is no longer apart being neither traitor nor Artisan or Horsemen nor hoplite but only a poor helpless creature yes that is an evil which also first begins in this state the evil is certainly not prevented there
for oligarchies have both the extremes of great wealth and utter poverty true but think again in his wealthy days while he was spending his money was a man of this sort of Whitmore good to the state for the purposes of citizenship or did he only seem to be a member of the ruling body although in truth he was neither rule or nor subject but just a spendthrift as you say he seemed to be a ruler but was only a spendthrift may we not say that this is the Drone in the house who is like the
Drone in the honeycomb and that the one is the plague of the city as the other is of the hive just so Socrates and God has made the flying drones at emantis all without stings whereas of the walking drones he has made some without stings but others have Dreadful stings of the stingless class are those who in their old age and as poppers of the stingers come all the criminal class as they are termed most true he said clearly then whenever you see Paupers in a state somewhere in that neighborhood there are hidden away thieves
and cut purses and robbers of temples and all sorts of male factors clearly well I said and in oligarchical states do you not find poppers yes he said nearly everybody is a pauper who is not a ruler and may we be so bold as to affirm that there are also many criminals to be found in them Rogues who have stings and whom the authorities are careful to restrain by force certainly we may be so bold the existence of such persons is to be attributed to want of Education ill training and an evil constitution of the
state true such then is the form and such are the evils of oligarchy and there may be many other evils very likely then oligarchy or the form of government in which the rulers are elected for their wealth may now be dismissed let us next proceed to consider the nature and origin of the individual who answers to this state by all means does not the democratical man change into the oligarchical on this wise how a Time arrives when the representative of democracy has a son at first he begins by emulating his father and walking in his
footsteps but presently he sees him of a sudden foundering against the state as upon a sunken reef and he and all that he has is lost he may have been a general or some other high officer who is brought to trial under a Prejudice raised by informers and either put to death or exiled or deprived of the Privileges of a citizen and all his property taken from him nothing more likely and the son has seen and known all this he is a ruined man and his fear has taught him to knock ambition and passion head
foremost from his bosom's throne humbled by poverty he takes to money making and by mean and miserly savings and hard work gets a fortune together is not such and unlikely to seat the concupiscent and Covetous element on the vacant throne and to suffer it to play the great king within him Gert with tiara and chain and Scimitar most true he replied and when he has made reason and spirit sit down on the ground obediently on either side of their Sovereign and taught them to know their place he compels the one to think only of how
lesser sums may be turned into larger ones and will not allow the other to worship and admire anything but riches and rich men or to be ambitious of anything so much as the acquisition of wealth and the means of acquiring it of all changes he said there is none so Speedy or so sure as the conversion of the ambitious youth into the avaricious one and the avaricious I said is the oligarchical youth yes he said at any rate the individual out of whom he came is like the state out of which oligarchy came let us
then consider whether there is any likeness between them very good first then they resemble one another in the value which they set upon wealth certainly also in their penurious laborious character the individual only satisfies his necessary appetites and confines his expenditure to them his other desires he subdues under the idea that they are unprofitable true he is a Shabby fellow who saves something out of everything and makes a purse for himself and this is the sort of man whom the vulgar applaud is he not a true image of the state which he represents he appears
to me to be so at any rate money is highly valued by him as well as by the state you see that he is not a man of cultivation I said I imagine not he said had he been educated he would never have made a blind God director of his for us or given him Chief honor excellent I said yet consider must we not further admit that owing to this want of cultivation there will be found in him drone-like desires as of Pauper and Rogue which are forcibly kept down by his General habit of life
true do you know where you will have to look if you want to discover his rogaries where must I look you should see him where he has some great opportunity of acting dishonestly as in the guardianship of an orphan I it will be clear enough then that in his ordinary dealings which give him a reputation for honesty he coerces his bad passions by an enforced virtue not making them see that they are wrong or taming them by reason but by necessity and fear constraining them and because he trembles for his possessions to be sure yes
indeed my dear friend but you will find that the natural desires of the Drone commonly exist in him all the same whenever he has to spend what is not his own yes and they will be strong in him too the man then will be at war with himself he will be two men and not one but in general his better desires will be found to Prevail over his inferior ones true for these reasons such and one will be more respectable than most people yet the true virtue of a unanimous and harmonious soul will flee far
away and never come near him I should expect so and surely The Miser individually will be an ignoble competitor in a state for any prize of Victory or other object of honorable ambition he will not spend his money in the contest for Glory so afraid is he of Awakening his expensive appetites and inviting them to help and join in the struggle in true oligarchical fashion he fights with a small part only of his resources and the result commonly is that he loses the prize and saves his money very true can we any longer doubt then
that The Miser and Money Maker answers to the oligarchical state there can be no doubt next comes democracy of this the origin and nature have still to be considered by us and then we will inquire into the ways of the democratic man and bring him up for judgment that he said is our method well I said and how does the change from oligarchy into democracy arise is it not on this wise the good at which such a state aims is to become as rich as possible a desire which is insatiable what then the rulers being
aware that their power rests upon their wealth refused to curtail by law the extravagance of the spendthrift youth because they gain by their ruin they take interest from them and buy up their Estates and thus increase their own wealth and importance to be sure there can be no doubt that the love of wealth and the spirit of moderation cannot exist together in citizens of the same state to any considerable extent one or the other will be disregarded that is tolerably clear and in oligarchical States from the general spread of carelessness and extravagance men of good
family have often been reduced to begary yes often and still they remain in the city there they are ready to sting and fully armed and some of them owe money some have forfeited their citizenship a third class are in both predicaments and they hate and conspire against those who have got their property and against everybody else and are eager for revolution that is true on the other hand the men of business stooping as they walk and pretending not even to see those whom they have already ruined insert their sting that is their money into someone
else who is not on his guard against them and recover the parents some many times over multiplied into a family of children and so they make drone and popper to abound in the state yes he said there are plenty of them that is certain the evil blazes up like a fire and they will not extinguish it either by restricting a man's use of his own property or by another remedy what other one which is the next best and has the advantage of compelling the citizens to look to their characters let there be a general rule
that everyone shall enter into voluntary contracts at his own risk and there will be less of this scandalous money making and the evils of which we were speaking will be greatly lessened in the state yes they will be greatly lessened at present the governors induced by the motives which I have named treat their subjects badly while they in their adherence especially the young men of the governing class are habituated to lead a life of luxury and idleness both of body and mind they do nothing and are incapable of resisting either pleasure or pain very true
they themselves care only for making money and are as indifferent as the Pauper to the cultivation of virtue yes quite as indifferent such as the State of Affairs which prevails among them and often rulers and their subjects may come in one another's way whether on a journey or on some other occasion of meeting on a pilgrimage or a March as fellow soldiers or fellow Sailors I and they may observe the behavior of each other in the very moment of danger for where danger is there is no fear that the poor will be despised by the
rich and very likely the wiry sunburnt poor man may be placed in battle at the side of a wealthy one who has never spoiled his complexion and has plenty of Superfluous flesh when he sees such and one puffing and at his Wit's End how can he avoid drawing the conclusion that men like him are only Rich because no one has the courage to despoil them and when they meet in private will not people be saying to one another our Warriors are not good for much yes he said I am quite aware that this is their
way of talking and as in a body which is disease the addition of a touch from without may bring on illness and sometimes even when there is is no external provocation a commotion may arise within in the same way wherever there is weakness in the state there is also likely to be illness of which the occasion may be very slight the one party introducing from without their oligarchical the other their democratical allies and then the state Falls sick and is at war with herself and maybe at times distracted even when there is no external cause
yes surely and then democracy comes into being after the poor have conquered their opponents slaughtering salmon banishing some while to the remainder they give an equal share of freedom and Power and this is the form of government in which the magistrates are commonly elected by lot yes he said that is the nature of democracy whether the revolution has been affected by arms or whether fear has caused the opposite party to withdraw and now what is their manner of life and what sort of a government have they for as the government is such will be the
man clearly he said in the first place are they not free and is not the City full of freedom and frankness a man may say and do what he likes tis said so he replied and where freedom is the individual is clearly able to order for himself his own life as he pleases clearly then in this kind of state there will be the greatest variety of human Natures there will this then seems likely to be the fairest of States being like an embroidered robe which is spangled with every sort of flower and just as women
and children think a variety of colors to be of all things most Charming so there are many men to whom this state which is spangled with the manners and characters of mankind will appear to be the fairest of States yes yes my good sir and there will be no better in which to look for a government why because of the Liberty which Reigns there they have a complete assortment of constitutions and he who has a mind to establish a state as we have been doing must go to a democracy as he would to a Bazaar
at which they sell them and pick out the one that suits him then when he has made his choice he may found his State he will be sure to have patterns enough and there being no necessity I said for you to govern in this state even if you have the capacity or to be governed unless you like or go to war when the rest go to war or to be at peace when others are at peace unless you are so disposed there being no necessity also because some law forbids you to hold office or be
a dcast that you should not hold office or be a dcast if you have a fancy is not this a way of life which for the moment is supremely delightful for the moment yes and is not their Humanity to The Condemned in some cases quite Charming have you not observed how in a democracy many persons although they have been sentenced to death or Exile just stay where they are and walk about the world the gentleman parades like a hero and nobody sees or cares yes he replied many and many are one see too I said
the forgiving Spirit of democracy and they don't care about Trifles and the disregard which she shows of all the fine principles which we solemnly laid down at the foundation of the city as when we said that except in the case of some rarely gifted nature there never will be a good man who has not from his childhood been used to play amid things of beauty and make of them a joy in a study how grandly does she trample All These Fine Notions of ours under her feet never giving a thought to the Pursuits which make
a Statesman and promoting to honor anyone who professes to be the people's friend yes she is of a noble Spirit these and other Kindred characteristics are proper to democracy which is a Charming form of government full of variety into disorder and dispensing a sort of equality to equals and unequals alike we know her well consider now I said what manner of man the individual is or rather consider as in the case of the state how he comes into being very good he said is not this the way he is the son of the miserly and
oligarchical father who has trained him in his own habits exactly and like his father he keeps under by force the pleasures which are of the spending and not of the getting sort being those which are called unnecessary obviously would you like for the sake of clearness to distinguish which are the necessary and which are the unnecessary Pleasures I should are not necessary Pleasures those of which we cannot get rid and of which the satisfaction is a benefit to us and they are rightly called so because we are framed by nature to desire both what is
beneficial and what is necessary and cannot help it true we are not wrong therefore in calling them necessary we are not and the desires of which a man may get rid if he takes pains from his youth upwards of which the presence moreover does no good and in some cases the reverse of good shall we not be right in saying that all these are unnecessary yes certainly suppose we select an example of either kind in order that we may have a general notion of them very good will not the desire of eating that is of
simple food and condiments insofar as they are required for health and strength be of the necessary class that is what I should suppose the pleasure of eating is necessary in two ways it does US good and it is essential to the continuance of Life yes but the condiments are only necessary insofar as they are good for health certainly and the desire which goes beyond this of more delicate food or other luxuries which might generally be got rid of if controlled and trained in Youth and is hurtful to the body and hurtful to the soul in
the pursuit of wisdom and virtue may be rightly called unnecessary very true may we not say that these desires spend and that the others make money because they conduced to production certainly and of the pleasures of love and all other Pleasures the same holds Good true and the Drone of whom we spoke was he who was surfeited in pleasures and desires of this sort and was the slave of the unnecessary desires whereas he who was subject to the necessary only was miserly and oligarchical very true again let us see how the democratical man grows out
of the oligarchical the following as I suspect is commonly the process what is the process when a young man who has been brought up as we were just now describing in a vulgar and miserly way has tasted drone's honey and has come to associate with Fierce and crafty Natures who are able to provide for him all sorts of refinements and varieties of pleasure then as you may imagine the change will begin of the oligarchical principle within him into the democratical inevitably and as in the city like was helping like and the change was affected by
an alliance from without assisting One Division of the citizens so too the young man is changed by a class of desires coming from without to assist the desires within him that which is Akin and a like again helping that which is Akin and a like certainly and if there be any Ally which AIDS the oligarchical principle within him whether the influence of a father or of Kindred advising or rebuking him then there arises in his soul a faction and an opposite faction and he goes to war with himself it must be so and there are
times when the Democratic principle gives way to the oligarchical and some of his desires die and others are banished a spirit of reverence enters into the young man's soul and order is restored yes he said that sometimes happens and then again after the old desires have been driven out fresh ones spring up which are akin to them and because he their father does not know how to educate them wax Fierce and numerous yes he said that is apt to be the way they draw him to his old Associates and holding secret intercourse with them breed
and multiply in him very true at length they seize upon the Citadel of the young man's Soul which they perceive to be void of all accomplishments and fair Pursuits and true words which make their Abode in the minds of men who are dear to the gods and are their best Guardians and Sentinels none better false and boastful conceits and phrases Mount upwards and take their place they are certain to do so and so the young man returns into the country of the lotus eaters and takes up his dwelling there in the face of all men
and if any help be sent by his friends to the oligarchical part of him the afore said vain conceits shut the Gate of the King's fastness and they will neither allow the embassy itself to enter nor if private advisors offer the fatherly counsel of the Aged will they listen to them or receive them there is a battle and they gain the day and then which they call silliness is ignominiously thrust into Exile by them and Temperance which they nickname unmanliness is trampled in the mire and cast forth they persuade men that moderation and orderly expenditure
are vulgarity and meanness and so by the help of a rabble of evil appetites they drive them Beyond The Border yes with a will and when they have emptied and swept clean the soul of him who is now in their power and who is being initiated by them in great Mysteries the next thing is to bring back to their house insolence and Anarchy and waste and impudence in bright array having garlands on their heads and a great company with them hemming their praises and calling them by sweet names insolence they term breeding and Anarchy Liberty
and waste magnificence and impudence courage and so the young man passes out of his original nature which was trained in the school of necessity into the freedom and libertinism of useless and unnecessary pleasures yes he said the change in him is visible enough after this he lives on spending his money and labor and time on unnecessary Pleasures quite as much as unnecessary ones but if he be fortunate and is not too much disordered in his wits when years have elapsed and the Heyday of passion is over supposing that he then readmits into the city some
part of the exiled virtues and does not wholly give himself up to their successors in that case he balances his pleasures and lives in a sort of equilibrium putting the government of himself into the hands of the one which comes first and wins the turn and when he has had enough of that then into the hands of another he despises none of them but encourages them all equally very true he said neither does he receive or let pass into the Fortress any true word of advice if anyone says to him that some Pleasures are the
satisfactions of good and Noble desires and others of evil desires and that he ought to use and honor some and chastise and master the others whenever this is repeated to him he shakes his head and says that they are all alike and that one is as good as another yes he said that is the way with him yes I said he lives from day to day indulging the appetite of the hour and sometimes he is lapped in drink and strains of the flute then he becomes a water Drinker and tries to get thin then he
takes a turn at gymnastics sometimes idling and neglecting everything then once more living the life of a philosopher often he is busy with politics and starts to his feet and says and does whatever comes into his head and if he is emulous of anyone who is a warrior off he is in that direction or of men of business once more in that his life has neither law nor order and this distracted existence he turns joy and Bliss and freedom and so he goes on yes he replied he is all Liberty and equality yes I said
his life is Motley and manifold and an epitome of the lives of many he answers to the state which we described as fair and Spangled and many a man and many a woman will take him for their pattern and many a constitution and many an example of manners is contained in him just so let him then be set over against democracy he may truly be called the Democratic man let that be his place he said last of all comes the most beautiful of all man and state alike tyranny and the Tyrant these we have now
to consider quite true he said say then my friend in what Manner does tyranny arise that it has a democratic origin is evident clearly and does not tyranny spring from democracy in the same manner as democracy from oligarchy I mean after a sort how the good which oligarchy proposed to itself and the means by which it was maintained was excess of wealth am I not right yes and the insatiable desire of wealth and the neglect of all other things for the sake of Money Getting was also the ruin of oligarchy true and democracy has her
own good of which the insatiable desire brings her to dissolution what good freedom I replied which as they tell you in a democracy is the glory of the state and that therefore in a democracy alone will the Freeman of nature deign to dwell yes the saying is in everybody's mouth I was going to observe that the insatiable desire of this and the neglect of other things introduces the change in democracy which occasions a demand for tyranny how so when a democracy which is thirsting for Freedom has evil cupbearers presiding over the feast and is drunk
too deeply of the strong wine of Freedom then unless her rulers are very amenable and give a plentiful draft she calls them to account and punishes them and says that they are cursed oligarchs yes he replied a very common occurrence yes I said and loyal citizens are insultingly termed by her slaves who hug their chains and Men of naught she would have subjects who are like rulers and rulers who are like subjects these are men after her own heart whom she praises and honors both in private and public now in such a state can Liberty
have any limit certainly not by degrees the Anarchy finds a way into private houses and ends by getting among the animals and infecting them how do you mean I I mean that the father grows accustomed to descend to the level of his sons and to fear them and the son is on a level with his father he having no respect or reverence for either of his parents and this is his freedom and the medic is equal with the citizen and the citizen with the medic and the stranger is quite as good as either yes he
said that is the way and these are not the only evils I said there are several lesser ones in such a state of society the master fears and flatters his Scholars and the scholars despise their masters and tutors young and old are all alike and the young man is on a level with the old and is ready to compete with him in word or deed and old men condescend to the young and are full of pleasantry and gaiety they are loath to be thought morose and authoritative and therefore they adopt the manners of the young
quite true he said the last extreme of popular Liberty is when the slave bought with money whether male or female is just as free as his or her purchaser nor must I forget to tell of the liberty and equality of the two sexes in relation to each other why not as escalus says utter the word which Rises to our lips that is what I am doing I replied and I must add that no one who does not know would believe how much greater is the Liberty which the animals who are under the Dominion of man
have in a democracy than in any other state for truly the she dogs as the proverb says are as good as their she Mistresses and the horses and asses have a way of marching along with all the rights and dignities of Freeman and they will run at anybody who comes in their way if he does not leave the road clear for them and all things are just ready to burst with Liberty when I take a Country Walk he said I often experience what you describe you and I have dreamed the same thing and above all
I said and as the result of all see how sensitive the citizens become they chafe impatiently at the least touch of authority and at length as you know they cease to care even for the laws written or Unwritten they will have no one over them yes he said I know it too well such my friend I said is the fair and glorious beginning out of which Springs tyranny glorious indeed he said but what is the next step the ruin of oligarchy is the ruin of democracy the same disease magnified and intensified by Liberty over Masters
democracy the truth being that the excessive increase of anything often causes a reaction in the opposite direction and this is the case not only in the seasons and in vegetable and animal life but above all in forms of government true the excess of Liberty whether in states or individuals seems only to pass into excess of slavery yes the natural order and so tyranny naturally arises out of democracy and the most aggravated form of tyranny and slavery out of the most extreme form of Liberty as we might expect that however was not as I believe your
question you rather desire to know what is that disorder which is generated alike in oligarchy and democracy and is the ruin of both just so he replied well I said I meant to refer to the class of idol spendthrifts of whom the more courageous are the leaders and the more timid the followers the same whom we were comparing to drones some stingless and others having stings a very just comparison these two classes are the plagues of every city in which they are generated being what phlegm and bile are to the body and the good physician
and lawgiver of the state ought like the wise bee Master to keep them at a distance and prevent if possible they're ever coming in and if they have anyhow found a way in then he should have them and their cells cut out as speedily as possible yes by all means he said then in order that we may see clearly what we are doing let us imagine democracy to be divided as indeed it is into three classes for in the first place Freedom creates rather more drones in the Democratic than there were in the oligarchical state
that is true and in the democr they are certainly more intensified how so because in the oligarchical state they are disqualified and driven from office and therefore they cannot train or gather strength whereas in a democracy they are almost the entire ruling power and while the Keener swords speak and act the rest keep buzzing about the bema and do not suffer a word to be said on the other side hence in democracies almost everything is managed by the drones very true he said then there is another class which is always being severed from the mass
what is that they are the orderly class which in a nation of Traders is sure to be the richest naturally so they are the most squeezable persons and yield the largest amount of Honey to the drones why he said there is little to be squeezed out of people who have little and this is called the wealthy class and the drones feed upon them and if any of them are suspected by him of having Notions of freedom and of resistance to his authority he will have a good pretext for destroying them by placing them at the
mercy of the enemy and for all these reasons the Tyrant must be always getting up a war he must now he begins to grow on Pop popular a necessary result than some of those who joined in setting him up and who are in power speak their minds to him and to one another and the more courageous of them cast in his teeth what is being done yes that may be expected and the Tyrant if he means to rule must get rid of them he cannot stop while he has a friend or an enemy who is
good for anything he cannot and therefore he must look about him and see who is Valiant who is high-minded who is wise who is wealthy happy man he is the enemy of them all and must seek occasion against them whether he will or know until he has made a purgation of the state yes he said and a rare purgation yes I said not the sort of purgation which the Physicians make of the Body for they take away the worse and leave the better part but he does the reverse if he is to rule I suppose
that he cannot help himself what a blessed alternative I said to be compelled to dwell only with the many bad and to be by them hated or not to live at all yes that is the alternative and the more detestable his actions are to the citizens the more satellites and the greater devotion in them will he require certainly and who are the devoted band and where will he procure them they will flock to him he said of their own accord if he pays them by the dog I said here are more drones of every sort
and from every land yes he said there are but will he not desire to get them on the spot how do you mean he will rob the citizens of their slaves he will then set them free and enroll them in his bodyguard to be sure he said and he will be able to trust them best of all what a blessed creature I said must this Tyrant be he has put to death the others and has these for his trusted friends yes he said they are quite of his sort yes I said and these are the
new citizens whom he has called into existence who admire him and are his companions while the good hate and avoid him of course verily then tragedy is a wise thing and euripides a great tragedian why so why because he is the author of the pregnant saying tyrants are Wise by living with the wise and he clearly meant to say that they are the wise whom the Tyrant makes his companions yes he said and he also Praises tyranny as Godlike and many other things of the same kind are said by him and by the other poets
and therefore I said the tragic poets being wise men will forgive us and any others who live after our manner if we do not receive them into our state because they are the eulogists of tyranny yes he said those who have the wit will doubtless forgive us but they will continue to go to other cities and attract mobs and higher voices fair and loud and persuasive and draw the cities over to tyrannies and democracies very true moreover they are paid for this and receive honor the greatest honor as might be expected from tyrants and the
next greatest from democracies but the higher they ascend our constitution Hill the more their reputation fails and seems unable from shortness of breath to proceed further true but we are wandering from the subject let us therefore return and inquire how the Tyrant will maintain that fair and numerous and various and ever-changing army of his if he said there are sacred Treasures in the city he will confiscate and spend the and insofar as the fortunes of a tainted persons May suffice he will be able to diminish the taxes which he would otherwise have to impose upon
the people and when these fail why clearly he said then he and his Boon companions whether male or female will be maintained out of his father's estate you mean to say that the people from whom he has derived his being will maintain him and his companions yes he said they cannot help themselves but what if the people fly into a passion and of her that a grown-up son ought not to be supported by his father but that the father should be supported by the son the father did not bring him into being or settle him
in life in order that when his son became a man he should himself be the servant of his own servants and should support him and his rabble of slaves and companions but that his son should protect him and that by his help he might be emancipated from the government of the Rich and aristocratic as they are termed and so he bids him and his companions depart just as any other father might drive out of the house a riotous son and his undesirable Associates by Heaven he said then the parent will discover what a monster he
has been fostering in his bosom and when he wants to drive him out he will find that he is weak and his son strong why you do not mean to say that the Tyrant will use violence what beat his father if he opposes him yes he will having first disarmed him then he is a parasite and a cruel guardian of an aged parent and this is real tyranny about which there can be no longer a mistake as the saying is the people who would escape the smoke which is the slavery of Freeman has fallen into
the fire which is the tyranny of slaves thus Liberty getting out of all order and reason passes into the harshest and bitterest form of slavery true he said very well and may we not rightly say that we have sufficiently discussed the nature of tyranny and the manner of the transition from democracy to tyranny yes quite enough he said book nine last of all comes the tyrannical man about whom we have once more to ask how is he formed out of the democratical and how does he live in happiness or in misery yes he said he
is the only one remaining there is however I said a previous question which remains unanswered what question I do not think that we have adequately determined the nature and number of the appetites and until this is accomplished the inquiry will always be confused well he said it is not too late to supply the Omission very true I said and observe the point which I want to understand certain of the unnecessary pleasures and appetites I conceive to be unlawful everyone appears to have them but in some persons they are controlled by the laws and by reason
and the better desires Prevail over them either they are wholly banished or they become few and weak while in the case of others they are stronger and there are more of them which appetites do you mean I mean those which are awake when the reasoning in human and power is asleep then the wild beast within us gorged with meat or drink starts up and having shaken off sleep Goes Forth to satisfy his desires and there is no conceivable folly or crime not accepting incest or any other unnatural Union or parasite or the eating of forbidden
food which at such a time when he has parted company with all shame and sense a man may not be ready to commit most true he said but when a man's pulse is healthy and temperate and when before going to sleep he has awakened his rational powers and fed them on Noble thoughts and inquiries collecting himself in meditation after having first indulged his appetites neither too much nor too little but just enough to lay them to sleep and prevent them and their enjoyments and pains from interfering with the higher principle which he leaves in the
Solitude of pure abstraction free to contemplate and aspire to the knowledge of the unknown whether in past present or future when again he is a laid the passionate element if he has a quarrel against anyone I say when after pacifying the two irrational principles he Rouses up the third which is reason before he takes his rest then as you know he attains truth most nearly and is least likely to be the sport of fantastic and Lawless Visions I quite agree in saying this I have been running into a digression but the point which I desire
to note is that in all of us even in Good Men there is a lawless wild beast nature which peers out in sleep pray consider whether I am right and you agree with me yes I agree and now remember the character which we attributed to the Democratic man he was supposed from his youth upwards to have been trained under a miserly parent who encouraged the saving appetites in him but discontinence the unnecessary which aim only at amusement and ornament true and then he got into the company of a more refined licentious sort of people and
taking to all their wanton ways rushed into the opposite extreme from an abhorrance of his father's meanness at last being a better man than his corrupters he was drawn in both directions until he halted Midway and led a life not of vulgar and slavish passion but of what he deemed moderate Indulgence in various pleasures after this manner the Democrat was generated out of the oligarch yes he said that was our view of him and is so still and now I said years will have passed away and you must conceive this man such as he is
to have a son who is brought up in his father's principles I can imagine him then you must further imagine the same thing to happen to the sun which has already happened to the father he is drawn into a perfectly Lawless life which by his seducers is termed perfect Liberty and his father and friends take part with his moderate desires and the opposite party assist the opposite ones as soon as these dire magicians and Tyrant makers find that they are losing their hold on him they contrived to implant in him a master passion to be
Lord over his Idol and spendthrift lusts a sort of monstrous winged drone that is the only image which will adequately describe him yes he said that is the only adequate image of him and when his other lusts amid clouds of incense and perfumes and garlands and wines and all the pleasures of a dissolute life now let loose come buzzing around him nourishing to the utmost The Sting of desire which they implant in his drone-like nature then at last this lord of the Soul having Madness for the captain of his guard breaks out into a frenzy
and if he finds in himself any good opinions or appetites in process of formation and there is in him any sense of Shame remaining to these better principles he puts an end and casts them forth until he has purged away Temperance and brought in Madness to the full yes he said that is the way in which the tyrannical man is generated and is not this the reason why of old love has been called a tyrant I should not Wonder further I said has not a drunken man also the spirit of a tyrant he has and
you know that a man who is deranged and not right in his mind will fancy that he is able to rule not only over men but also over the gods that he will and the tyrannical man in the true sense of the word comes into being when either under the influence of nature or habit or both he becomes drunken lustful passionate oh my friend is not that so assuredly such is the man and such is his origin and next how does he live suppose as people facetiously say you were to tell me I imagine I
said at the next step in his progress that there will be feasts and carousels and revelings and courtesans and all that sort of thing love is the lord of the house within him and orders all the concerns of his soul that is certain yes and every day and every night desires grow up many in formidable and their demands are many they are indeed he said his revenues if he has any are soon spent true then comes debt in the cutting down of his property of course when he has nothing left must not his desires crowding
in the nest like young Ravens be crying aloud for food and he goaded on by them and especially by love himself who is in a manner the captain of them is in a frenzy and would feign discover whom he can defraud or despoil of his property in order that he may gratify them yes that is sure to be the case he must have money no matter how if he is to escape horrid pains and pangs he must and as in himself there there was a succession of pleasures and the new got the better of the
old and took away their rights so he being younger will claim to have more than his father and his mother and if he has spent his own share of the property he will take a slice of theirs no doubt he will and if his parents will not give way then he will try first of all to cheat and deceive them very true and if he fails then he will use force and plunder them yes probably and if the old man and woman fight for their own what then my friend will the creature feel any compunction
at tyrannizing over them nay he said I should not feel it all comfortable about his parents but o Heavens ADI mantis on account of some newfangled love of a harlot who is anything but a necessary connection can you believe that he would strike the mother who is his ancient friend and necessary to his very existence and would Place her under the authority of the other when she is brought under the same roof with her or that under like circumstances he would do the same to his withered old father first and most indispensable of friends for
the sake of some newly found blooming youth who is the reverse of indispensable yes indeed he said I believe that he would truly then I said a tyrannical son is a blessing to his father and mother he is indeed he replied he first takes their property and when that fails and Pleasures are beginning to swarm in the hive of his soul then he breaks into a house or steals the garments of some nightly Wayfarer next he proceeds to clear a temple meanwhile the old opinions which he had when a child and which gave judgment about
Good and Evil are overthrown by those others which have just been emancipated and are now The Bodyguard of love and share his Empire these in his Democratic days when he was still subject to the laws and to his father were only let loose in the dreams of sleep but now that he is under the Dominion of love he becomes always and in waking reality what he was then very rarely and in a dream only he will commit the foulest murder or eat forbidden food or be guilty of any other horrid Act love is his Tyrant
and lives lordly in him and lawlessly and being himself a king leads him on as a tyrant leads a state to the performance of any Reckless Deed by which he can maintain himself and the rabble of his associates whether Those whom evil Communications have brought in from without or Those whom he himself is allowed to break loose within him by reason of a similar evil nature in himself have we not hear a picture of his way of life yes indeed he said and if there are only a few of them in the state and the
rest of the people are well disposed they go away and become The Bodyguard or mercenary soldiers of some other Tyrant who may probably want them for a war and if there is no war they stay at home and do many little pieces of Mischief in the city what sort of Mischief for example they are the thieves burglars cut purses foot pads robbers of temples man Stealers of the community or if they are able to speak they turn informers and bear false witness and take bribes a small catalog of evils even if the perpetrators of them
are few in number yes I said but small and great are comparative terms and all these things in the misery and evil which they inflict upon a state do not come within a thousand miles of the Tyrant when this noxious class and their followers grow numerous and become conscious of their strength assisted by the infatuation of the people they choose from among themselves the one who has most of the tyrant in his own soul and him they create their Tyrant yes he said and he will be the most fit to be a tyrant if the
people yield well and good but if they resist him as he began by beating his own father and mother so now if he has the power he beats them and will keep his dear old father land or motherland as the cretans say in subjection to his young retainers whom he has introduced to be their rulers and Masters this is the end of his passions and desires exactly yes truly they are always either the Masters or servants and never the friends of anybody the Tyrant never tastes of true Freedom or friendship certainly not and may we
not rightly call such men treacherous no question also they are utterly unjust if we were right in our notion of Justice yes he said and we were perfectly right let us then sum up in a word I said the character of the worst man he is the waking reality of what we dreamed most true and this is he who being by Nature most of a tyrant Bears Rule and the longer he lives the more of a tyrant he becomes that is certain said glaucon taking his turn to answer and will not he who has been
shown to be the wickedest be also the most miserable and he who is tyrannized longest and most most continually and truly miserable although this may not be the opinion of men in general yes he said inevitably and must not the tyrannical man be like the tyrannical State and the democratical man like the democratical state and the same of the others certainly and as state is to state in virtue and happiness so is man in relation to man to be sure then comparing our original city which was under a king and the city which is under
a tyrant how do they stand as to Virtue they are the opposite extremes he said for one is the very best and the other is the very worst there can be no mistake I said as to which is which and therefore I will at once inquire whether you would arrive at a similar decision about their relative happiness and misery and here we must not allow ourselves to be panic-stricken at The Apparition of the Tyrant who is only a unit and may perhaps have a few retainers about him but let us go as we ought into
every corner of the city and look all about and then we will give our opinion a fair invitation he replied and I see as everyone must that a tyranny is the wretchedest form of government and the rule of a king the happiest and in estimating the men too may I not fairly make a like request that I should have a judge whose mind can enter into and see through human nature he must not be like a child who looks at the outside and is dazzled at the pompous aspect which the tyrannical nature assumes to the
beholder but let him be one who has a clear Insight may I suppose that the judgment is given in the hearing of us all by one who is able to judge and has dwelt in the same place with him and been present at his daily life and known him in his family relations where he may be seen stripped of his tragedy attire and again in the hour of public danger he shall tell us about the happiness and misery of the Tyrant when compared with other men that again he said is a very fair proposal shall
I assume that we ourselves are able and experienced judges and have before now met with such a person we shall then have someone who will answer our inquiries by all means let me ask you not to forget the parallel of the individual in the state bearing this in mind and glancing in turn from one to the other of them will you tell me their respective conditions what do you mean he asked beginning with the state I replied would you say that a city which is governed by a tyrant is free or enslaved no City he
said can be more completely enslaved and yet as you see there are free men as well as Masters in such a state yes he said I see that there are a few but the people speaking generally and the best of them are miserably degraded and enslaved then if the man is like the state I said must not the same rule Prevail his soul is full of meanness and vulgarity the best elements in him are enslaved and there is a small ruling part which is also the worst and maddest inevitably and would you say that the
soul of such and one is the soul of a free man or of a slave he has the soul of a slave in my opinion and the state which is enslaved under a tyrant is utterly incapable of acting voluntarily utterly incapable and also the soul which is under a tyrant I am speaking of the Soul taken as a whole is least capable of doing what she desires there is a gad fly which goads her and she is full of trouble and remorse certainly and is the city which is under a tyrant rich or poor poor
and the tyrannical Soul must be always poor and insatiable true and must not such a state in such a man be always full of fear yes indeed is there any state in which you will find more of lamentation and sorrow and groaning and pain certainly not and is there any man in whom you will find more of this sort of misery than in the tyrannical man who is in a fury of passions and desires impossible reflecting upon these and similar evils you held the tyrannical state to be the most miserable of states and I was
right he said certainly I said and when you see the same evils in the tyrannical man what do you say of him I say that he is by far the most miserable of all men there I said I think that you are beginning to go wrong what do you mean I do not think that he has as yet reached the utmost extreme of misery then who is more miserable one of whom I'm about to speak who is that he who is of a tyrannical nature and instead of leading a private life has been cursed with
the further Misfortune of Being a public tyrant from what has been said I gather that you are right yes I replied but in this High argument you should be a little more certain and should not conjecture only for of all questions disrespecting good and evil is the greatest very true he said let me then offer you an illustration which may I think throw a light upon this subject what is your illustration the case of Rich individuals in cities who possess many slaves from them you may form an idea of the tyrant's condition for they both
have slaves the only difference is that he has more slaves yes that is the difference you know that they live securely and have nothing to apprehend from their servants what should they fear nothing but do You observe the reason of this yes the reason is that the whole city is leaked together for the protection of each individual very true I said but imagine one of these owners the master say of some 50 slaves together with his family and property and slaves carried off by a god Into the Wilderness where there are no free men to
help him will he not be in an Agony of fear lest he and his wife and children should be put to death by his slaves yes he said he will be in the utmost fear the time has arrived when he will be compelled to flatter die drivers of his slaves and make many promises to them of freedom and other things much against his will he will have to cajole his own servants yes he said that will be the only way of saving himself and suppose the same God who carried him away to surround him with
neighbors who will not suffer one man to be the master of another and who if they could catch the offender would take his life his case will be still worse if you suppose him to be everywhere surrounded and watched by enemies and is not this the sort of prison in which the Tyrant will be bound he who being by nature such as we have described is full of all sorts of fears and lusts his soul is dainty and greedy and yet alone of all men in the city he is never allowed to go on a
journey or to see the things which other Freeman desire to see but he lives in his hole like a woman hidden in the house and is jealous of any other citizen who goes into foreign parts and sees anything of Interest very true he said and a medieval such as these will not he who is ill-governed in his own person the tyrannical man I mean whom you just now decided to be the most miserable of all will not he be yet more miserable when instead of leading a private life he is constrained by Fortune to be
a public Tyrant he has to be master of others when he is not master of himself he is like a diseased or paralytic man who is compelled to pass his life not in retirement but fighting and combating with other men yes he said the similitude is most exact is not his case utterly miserable and does not the actual Tyrant lead a worse life than he whose life you determine to be the worst certainly he who is the real Tyrant whatever men may think is the real slave and is obliged to practice the greatest adulation and
Civility and to be the flatterer of the vilest of mankind he has desires which he is utterly unable to satisfy and has more wants than anyone and is truly poor if you know how to inspect the whole soul of him all his life long he is beset with fear and is full of convulsions and distractions even as the state which he resembles and surely the resemblance holds very true he said moreover as we were saying before he grows worse from having power he becomes and is of necessity more jealous more faithless more unjust more friendless
more impious than he was at first he is the purveyor and charisher of every sort of vice and the consequences that he is supremely miserable and that he makes everybody else as miserable as himself no man of any sense will dispute your words come then I said and as the general umpire in Theatrical contest proclaims the result do you also decide who in your opinion is first in the scale of happiness and who second and in what order the others follow there are five of them in all they are the Royal democratical oligarchical democratical tyrannical
the decision will be easily given he replied they shall be choruses coming on the stage and I must judge them in the order in which they enter by the Criterion of virtue and vice happiness and misery need we hire a Herald or shall I announce that the son of Ariston the best has decided that the best and Justice is also the happiest and that this is he who is the most Royal man and King over himself and that the worst and most unjust man is also the most miserable and that this is he who being
the greatest Tyrant of himself is also the greatest Tyrant of his State make the proclamation yourself he said and shall I add whether seen or unseen by Gods and Men Let the words be added then this I said will be our first proof and there is another which may also have some weight what is that the second proof is derived from the nature of the Soul seeing that the individual soul like the state has been divided by us into three principles the division Vision may I think furnish a new demonstration of what nature it seems
to me that to these three principles three Pleasures correspond also three desires and governing Powers how do you mean he said there is one principle with which as we were saying a man learns another with which he is angry the third having many forms has no special name but is denoted by the general term repetitive from the extraordinary strength and vehemence of the desires of eating and drinking and the other sensual appetites which are the main elements of it also money loving because such desires are generally Satisfied by the help of money that is true
he said if we were to say that the loves and pleasures of this third part were concerned with gain we should then be able to fall back on a single notion and might truly and intelligibly describe this part of the Soul as loving gain or money I agree with you again is not the passionate element holy said on ruling and conquer and getting Fame true suppose we call it the contentious or ambitious would the term be suitable extremely suitable on the other hand everyone sees that the principle of knowledge is wholly directed to the truth
and cares less than either of the others for gain or fame far less lover of wisdom lover of knowledge are titles which we may fitly apply to that part of the Soul certainly one principle prevails in The Souls of one class of men another and others as may happen yes then we may Begin by assuming that there are three classes of men lovers of wisdom lovers of Honor lovers of gain exactly and there are three kinds of pleasure which are there several objects very true now if you examine the three classes of men and ask
of them in turn which of their lives is pleasantest each will be found praising his own and appreciating that of others the money maker will contrast the vanity of Honor or of learning if they bring no money with the solid advantages of gold and silver true he said and the lover of Honor what will be his opinion will he not think that the pleasure of riches is vulgar while the pleasure of learning if it brings no distinction is all smoke and nonsense to him very true and are we to suppose I said that the philosopher
sets any value on other Pleasures in comparison with the pleasure of knowing the truth and in that Pursuit abiding ever learning not so far indeed from the heaven of pleasure does he not call the other Pleasures necessary under the idea that if there were no necessity for them he would rather not have them there can be no doubt of that he replied since then the pleasures of each class and the life of each are in dispute and the question is not which life is more or less honorable or better or worse but which is the
more pleasant or painless how shall we know who speaks truly I cannot myself tell he said well but what ought to be the Criterion is any better than experience and wisdom and reason there cannot be a better he said then I said reflect of the three individuals which has the greatest experience of all the pleasures which we enumerated has the lover of gain in learning the nature of essential truth greater experience of the pleasure of knowledge than the philosopher has of the pleasure of gain the philosopher he replied has greatly the advantage for he has
of necessity always known the taste of the other Pleasures from his childhood upwards but the lover of gain in all his experience has not of necessity tasted or I should rather say even had he desired could hardly obtain tasted the sweetness of learning and knowing truth then the lover of wisdom has a great advantage over the lover of gain for he has a double experience yes very great again has he greater experience of the pleasures of Honor or the lover of honor of the pleasures of wisdom nay he said all three are honored in proportion
as they attain their object for the rich man and the brave man and the wise man alike have their crowd of admirers and as they all receive honor they all have experience of the pleasures of Honor but the Delight which is to be found in the knowledge of true being is known to the philosopher only his experience then will enable him to judge better than anyone far better and he is the only one who has wisdom as well as experience certainly further the very faculty which is the instrument of judgment is not possessed by the
Covetous or ambitious man but only by the philosopher what faculty reason with whom as we were saying the decision ought to rest yes and reasoning is peculiarly his instrument certainly if wealth and gain were the Criterion then the praise or blame of the lover of gain would surely be the most trustworthy assuredly or if honor or Victory or courage in that case the Judgment of the ambitious or pugnacious would be the truest clearly but since experience and wisdom and reason are the judges the only inference possible he replied is that Pleasures which are approved by
the lover of wisdom and reason are the truest and so we arrive at the result that the pleasure of the intelligent part of the soul is the pleasantest of the three and that he of us in whom this is the ruling principle has the pleasantest life unquestionably he said the wise man speaks with authority when he approves of his own life and what does the judge affirm to be the life which is next and the pleasure which is next clearly that of the soldier and lover of Honor who is nearer to himself than the money
maker last comes the lover of gain very true he said twice in succession then has the just man overthrown the unjust in this conflict and now comes the third trial which is dedicated to Olympian Zeus the Savior a sage Whispers in my ear that no pleasure except that of the wise is quite true and pure all others are a shadow only and surely this will prove the greatest and most decisive of Falls yes the greatest but will you explain yourself I will work out the subject and you shall answer my questions proceed say then is
not pleasure opposed to pain true and there is a neutral state which is neither pleasure nor pain there is a state which is intermediate and a sort of repose of the Soul about either that is what you mean yes you remember what people say when they are sick what do they say that after all nothing is pleasanter than health but then they never knew this to be the greatest of Pleasures until they were ill yes I know he said and when persons are suffering from acute pain you must have heard them say that there is
nothing pleasanter than to get rid of their pain I have and there are many other cases of suffering in which the mere rest and cessation of pain and not any positive enjoyment is extolled by them as the greatest pleasure yes he said at the time they are pleased and well content to be at rest again when pleasure ceases that sort of rest or cessation will be painful doubtless he said then the intermediate state of rest will be pleasure and will also be pain so it would seem but can that which is neither become both I
should say not and both Pleasure and Pain are motions of the Soul are they not yes but that which is neither was just now shown to be rest and not motion and in a mean between them yes how then can we be right in supposing that the absence of pain is pleasure or that the absence of pleasure is pain impossible this then is an appearance only and not a reality that is to say the rest is pleasure at the moment and in comparison of what is painful and painful in comparison of what is pleasant but
all these representations when Tried by the test of true pleasure are not real but a sort of imposition that is the inference look at the other class of Pleasures which have no antecedent pains and you will no longer suppose as you perhaps May at present that pleasure is only the cessation of pain or pain of pleasure what are they he said and where shall I find them there are many of them take as an example the pleasures of smell which are very great and have no antecedent pains they come in a moment and when they
depart leave no pain behind them most true he said let us not then be induced to believe that Pure Pleasure is the cessation of pain or pain of pleasure no still the more numerous and violent Pleasures which reach the soul through the body are generally of this sort they are reliefs of pain that is true and the anticipations of future pleasures and pains are of a like nature yes shall I give you an illustration of them let me hear you would allow I said that there is in nature an upper and lower and middle region
I should and if a person were to go from the lower to the middle region would he not imagine that he is going up and he who is standing in the middle and sees when she has come would imagine that he is already in the upper region if he has never seen the true upper world to be sure he said how can he think otherwise but if he were taken back again he would imagine and truly imagine that he was descending No Doubt all that would arise out of his ignorance of the true upper and
middle and lower regions yes then can you wonder that persons who are inexperienced in the truth as they have wrong ideas about many other things should also have wrong ideas about Pleasure and Pain in the intermediate state so that when they are only being drawn towards the painful they feel pain and think the pain which they experience to be real and in like manner when drawn away from Pain to the neutral or intermediate State they firmly believe that they have reached the goal of satiety and pleasure they not knowing pleasure air in contrasting pain with
the absence of pain which is like contrasting black with gray instead of white can you wonder I say at this no indeed I should be much more disposed to wander at the opposite look at the matter thus hunger thirst and the like are inunditions of the bodily State yes and ignorance and Folly are intonitions of the Soul true and food and wisdom are the corresponding satisfactions of either certainly and is the satisfaction derived from that which has less or from that which has more existence the truer clearly from that which has more what classes of
things have a greater share of pure existence in your judgment those of which food and drink and condiments and all kinds of sustenance are examples or the class which contains true opinion and knowledge and mind and all the different kinds of virtue put the question in this way which has a more pure being that which is concerned with the invariable The Immortal and the true and is of such a nature and is found in such Natures or that which is concerned with and found in the variable and mortal and is itself variable and Mortal far
purer he replied is the being of that which is concerned with the invariable and as the essence of the invariable partake of knowledge in the same degree as of essence yes of knowledge in the same degree and of Truth in the same degree yes and conversely that which has less of truth will also have less of essence necessarily then in general those kinds of things which are in the service of the body have less of Truth and Essence than those which are in the service of the Soul far less and has not the body itself
less of Truth and Essence than the soul yes what is filled with more real existence and actually has a more real existence is more really filled than that which is filled with less real existence and is less real of course and if there be a pleasure in being filled with that which is according to Nature that which is more really filled with more real being will more really and truly enjoy true pleasure whereas that which participates in less real being will be less truly and surely satisfied and will participate in an illusory and less real
pleasure unquestionably those then who know not wisdom and virtue and are always busy with gluttony and sensuality go down and up again as far as the mean and in this region they move at random throughout life but they never pass into the true upper World either they neither look nor do they ever find their way neither are they truly filled with true being nor do they taste of pure and abiding pleasure like cattle with their eyes always look down and their heads stooping to the earth that is to the dining table they fatten and feed
and breed and in their excessive love of these Delights they kick and butt at one another with horns and Hooves which are made of iron and they kill one another by reason of their insatiable Lust For they fill themselves with that which is not substantial and the part of themselves which they feel is also unsubstantial and incontinent verily Socrates said glaucon you describe the life of the many like an oracle their Pleasures are mixed with pains how can they be otherwise for they are mere shadows and pictures of the true and are colored by contrast
which exaggerates both light and shade and so they implant in the minds of fools insane desires of themselves and they are fought about as Tessa chorus says that the Greeks fought about the shadow of Helena Troy in ignorance of the truth something of that sort must inevitably happen and must not the like happen with the spirited or passionate element of the soul will not the passionate man who carries his passion into action be in the like case whether he is envious and ambitious or violent and contentious or angry and discontented if he be seeking to
attain honor and victory in the satisfaction of his anger without reason or sense yes he said the same will happen with the spirited element also then may we not confidently assert that the lovers of money and honor when they seek their Pleasures under the guidance and in the company of reason and knowledge and pursue after and win the pleasures which wisdom shows them will also have the truest Pleasures in the highest degree which is attainable to them inasmuch as they follow truth and they will have the pleasures which are natural to them if that which
is best for each one is also most natural to him yes certainly the best is the most natural and when the whole soul follows the philosophical principle and there is no division the several parts are just and do each of them their own business and enjoy severally the best and truest pleasures of which they are capable exactly but when either of the two other principles prevails it fails in attaining its own pleasure and compels the rest to pursue after a pleasure which is a shadow only and which is not their own true and the greater
the interval which separates them from philosophy and reason the more strange and Elusive will be the pleasure yes and is not that farthest from reason which is at the greatest distance from Law and Order clearly and the lustful and tyrannical desires are as we saw at the greatest distance yes and the Royal and orderly desires are nearest yes then the Tyrant will live at the greatest distance from True or natural pleasure and the king at the least certainly but if so the Tyrant will live most unpleasantly and the King most pleasantly inevitably would you know
the measure of the interval which separates them will you tell me there appear to be three Pleasures one genuine and two spurious now the transgression of the Tyrant reaches a point beyond the spurious he has run away from the region of Law and reason and taken up his Abode with certain slave Pleasures which are his satellites and the measure of his inferiority can only be expressed in a figure how do you mean I assume I said that the Tyrant is in the third place from the oligarch the Democrat was in the middle yes and if
there is truth in what is preceded he will be wedded to an image of pleasure which is Thrice removed as to truth from the pleasure of the oligarch he will and the oligarch is third from the Royal since we count as one Royal and aristocratical yes he is third then the Tyrant is removed from True pleasure by the space of a number which is three times three manifestly the shadow then of tyrannical pleasure determined by the number of lengths will be a plane figure certainly and if you raise the power and make the plane a
solid there is no difficulty in seeing how vast is the interval by which the Tyrant is parted from the King yes the arithmetician will easily do the sum or if some person begins at the other end and measures the interval by which the king is parted from the tyrant in truth of pleasure he will find him when the multiplication is completed living 729 times more pleasantly and the Tyrant more painfully by this same interval what a wonderful calculation and how enormous is the distance which separates the just from the unjust in regard to Pleasure and
Pain yet a true calculation I said and a number which nearly concerns human life if human beings are concerned with days and nights and months and years 729 nearly equals the number of days and nights in the year yes he said human life is certainly concerned with them then if the good and just man be thus Superior in pleasure to the evil and unjust his superiority will be infinitely greater in propriety of life and in Beauty and virtue immeasurably greater well I said and now having arrived at this stage of the argument we may revert
to The Words which brought us hither was not someone saying that Injustice was a gain to the perfectly unjust who was reputed to be just yes that was said now then having determined the power and quality of justice and Injustice let us have a little conversation with him what shall we say to him let us make an image of the soul that he may have his own words presented before his eyes of what sort an ideal image of the Soul like the composite creations of ancient mythology such as the Chimera or Cilla or Cerberus and
there are many others in which two or more different Natures are said to grow into one there are said of have been such unions then do you now model the form of a multitudinous many-headed monster having a ring of heads of all manner of beasts tame and wild which he is able to generate and metamorphose at will you suppose marvelous powers in the artist but as language is more pliable than wax or any similar substance let there be such a model as you propose suppose now that you make a second form as of a lion
and a third of a man the second smaller than the first and the third smaller than the second that he said is an easier task and I have made them as you say and now join them and let the three grow into one that has been accomplished next fashion the outside of them into a single image as of a man so that he who is not able to look within and sees only the outer Hull May believe the Beast to be a single human creature I have done so he said and now to him who
maintains that it is profitable for the human creature to be unjust and unprofitable to be just let us reply that if he right it is profitable for this creature to Feast the multitudinous monster and strengthen the lion and the lion-like qualities but to starve and weaken the man who is consequently liable to be dragged about at the mercy of either of the other two and he is not to attempt to familiarize or harmonize them with one another he ought rather to suffer them to fight and bite and devour one another certainly he said that is
what the approver of Injustice says to him the supporter of Justice makes answer that he should ever so speak and act as to give the man within him in some way or other the most complete Mastery over the entire human creature he should watch over the many-headed monster like a good husbandman fostering and cultivating the gentle qualities and preventing the wild ones from growing he should be making the Lion Heart his Ally and in common care of them all should be uniting the several parts with one another and with himself yes he said that is
quite what the maintainer of Justice say and so from every point of view whether of pleasure honor or Advantage the approver of justice is right and speaks the truth and the disapprover is wrong and false and ignorant yes from every point of view come now and let us gently reason with the unjust who is not intentionally an error sweet sir we will say to him what thank you of things esteemed Noble and ignoble is not the noble that which subjects the Beast to the man or rather to the god in man and the ignoble that
which subjects the man to the Beast he can hardly avoid saying yes can he now not if he has any regard for my opinion but if he agrees so far we may ask him to answer another question then how would a man profit if he received gold and silver on the condition that he was to enslave the noblest part of him to the worst who can imagine that a man who sold his son or daughter into slavery for money especially if he sold them into the hands of Fierce and evil men would be the Gainer
however large might be the sum which he received and will anyone say that he is not a miserable cative who remorselessly sells his own Divine being to that which is most Godless and detestable a Ripley took the necklace as the price of her husband's life but he is taking a bribe in order to Compass a worse ruin yes said glaucon far worse I will answer for him has not the intempered been censured of old because in him the huge multiform monster is allowed to be too much at large clearly and men are blamed for pride
in bad temper when the lion and serpent element in them disproportionately grows and gains strength yes and luxury and softness are blamed because they relax and weaken this same creature and make a cow part of him very true and is not a man reproached for flattery and meanness who subordinates the spirited animal to the unruly monster and for the sake of money of which he can never have enough habituates him in the days of his youth to be trampled in the mire and from being a lion to become a monkey true he said and why
are mean Employments and Manual Arts a reproach only because they imply a natural weakness of the higher principle the individual is unable to control the creatures within him but has to court them and his great study is how to flatter them such appears to be the reason and therefore being desirous of placing him under a rule like that of the best we say that he ought to be the servant of the best in whom the Divine rules not as thrasymica supposed to the injury of the servant but because everyone had better be ruled by Divine
wisdom dwelling within him or if this be impossible then by an external Authority in order that we may be all as far as possible under the same government friends and equals true he said and this is clearly seen to be the intention of the law which is the Ally of the whole city and is seen also in the authority which we exercise over children and the refusal to let them be free until we have established in them a principle analogous to the constitution of a state and by cultivation of this higher element have set up
in their hearts a guardian and ruler like our own and when this is done they may go their ways yes he said the purpose of the law is Manifest from what point of view then and on what ground can we say that a man is profited by Injustice or intemperance or other baseness which will make him a worse man even though he acquired money or power by his wickedness from no point of view at all what shall he profit if his Injustice be undetected and unpunished he who is undetected only gets worse whereas he who
is detected and punished has the brutal part of his nature silenced and humanized the gentler element in him is liberated and his whole soul is perfected and ennobled by the acquirement of justice and Temperance and wisdom more than the body ever is by receiving Gifts of beauty strength and health in proportion as the soul is more honorable than the body certainly he said to this nobler purpose the man of understanding will devote the energies of his life and in the first place he will honor studies which impress these qualities on his soul and will disregard
others clearly he said in the next place he will regulate his bodily habit and training and so far will he be from yielding to brutal and irrational Pleasures that he will regard even Health as quite a secondary matter his first object will be not that he may be fair or strong or well unless he is likely thereby to gain Temperance but he will always desire so to attemper the body as to preserve the harmony of the Soul certainly he will if he has true music in him and in the acquisition of wealth there is a
principle of order and Harmony which he will also observe he will not allow himself to be dazzled by the foolish Applause of the world and Heap up riches to his own infinite harm certainly not he said he will look at the city which is within him and take heed that no disorder occur in it such as might arise either from superfluity or from want and upon this principle he will regulate his property and gain or spend according to his means very true and for the same reason he will gladly accept and enjoy such honors as
he deems likely to make him a better man but those whether private or public which are likely to disorder his life he will avoid then if that is his motive he will not be a Statesman by the dog of Egypt he will in the city which is his own he certainly will though in the land of his birth perhaps not unless he have a Divine call I understand you mean that he will be a ruler in the city of which we are the founders and which exists in idea only for I do not believe that
there is such and one anywhere on Earth in heaven I replied there has laid up a pattern of it me thinks which he who desires May behold and beholding may set his own house in order but whether such and one exists or ever will exist in fact is no matter for he will live after the manner of that City having nothing to do with any other I think so he said book 10 of the many excellences which I perceive in the order of our state there is none which upon reflection pleases me better than the
rule about poetry to what do you refer to the rejection of imitative poetry which certainly ought not to be received as I see far more clearly now that the parts of the Soul have been distinguished what do you mean speaking in confidence for I should not like to have my words repeated to the tragedians and the rest of the imitative tribe but I do not mind saying to you that all poetical imitations are ruinous to the understanding of the heroes and that the knowledge of their true nature is the only antidote to them explain the
purport of your remark well I will tell you although I have always from my earliest youth had an awe and love of homer which even now makes the words falter on my lips for he is the Great Captain and teacher of the whole of that Charming tragic company but a man is not to be reverenced more than the truth and therefore I will speak out very good he said listen to me then or rather answer me put your question can you tell me what imitation is for I really do not know a likely thing then
that I should know why not for the dollar I may often see a thing sooner than the Keener very true he said but in your presence even if I had any faint notion I could not muster courage to utter it will you inquire yourself well then Shall We Begin the inquiry in our usual manner whenever a number of individuals have a common name we assume them to have also a corresponding idea or form do you understand me I do let us take any common instance there are beds and tables in the world plenty of them
are there not yes but there are only two ideas or forms of them one the idea of a bed the other of a table true and the maker of either of them makes a bed or he makes a table for our use in accordance with the idea that is our way of speaking in this in similar instances but no artificer makes the ideas themselves how could he impossible and there is another artist I should like to know what you would say of him who is he one who is the maker of all the works of
all other workmen what an extraordinary man wait a little and there will be more reason for your saying so for this is he who is able to make not only vessels of every kind but plants and animals himself and all other things the Earth and Heaven and the things which are in heaven or under the Earth he makes the gods also he must be a wizard and no mistake oh you are incredulous are you do you mean that there is no such maker or Creator or that in one sense there might be a maker of
all these things but in another knot do you see that there is a way in which you could make them all yourself what way an easy way enough or rather there are many ways in which the feet might be quickly and easily accomplished none quicker than that of turning a mirror round and round you would soon enough make the sun and the heavens and the Earth and yourself and other animals and plants and all the other things of which we were just now speaking in the mirror yes he said but they would be appearances only
very good I said you are coming to the point now and the painter too is as I conceive just such another a creator of appearances is he not of course but then I suppose you will say that what he creates is untrue and yet there is a sense in which the painter also creates a bed yes he said but not a real bed and what of the maker of the bed were you not saying that he too makes not the idea which according to our view is the essence of the bed but only a particular
bed yes I did then if he does not make that which exists he cannot make true existence but only some semblance of existence and if anyone were to say that the work of the maker of the bed or of any other Workman has real existence he could hardly be supposed to be speaking the truth at any rate he replied philosophers would say that he was not speaking the truth no wonder then that his work too is an indistinct expression of truth no wonder suppose now that by the Light of the examples just offered we inquire
who this imitator is if you please well then here are three beds one existing in nature which is made by God as I think that we may say for no one else can be the maker no there is another which is the the work of the carpenter yes and the work of the painter is a third yes beds then are of three kinds and there are three artists who superintend them God the maker of the bed and the painter yes there are three of them God whether from choice or from necessity made one bed in
nature and one only two or more such ideal beds neither ever have been or ever will be made by God why is that because even if he had made but two a third would still appear behind them which both of them would have for their idea and that would be the ideal bed and not the two others very true he said God knew this and he desired to be the real maker of a real bed not a particular maker of a particular bed and therefore he created a bed which is essentially and by nature one
only so we believe shall we then speak of him as the natural author or maker of the bed yes he replied inasmuch as by the natural process of creation he is the author of this and of all other things and what shall we say of the carpenter is not he also the maker of the bed yes but would you call the painter a Creator and maker certainly not yet if he is not the maker what is he in relation to the bed I think he said that we may fairly designate him as the imitator of
that which the others make go I said then you call him who is third in the descent from nature an imitator certainly he said and the tragic poet is an imitator and therefore like all other imitators he is Thrice removed from the King and from the truth that appears to be so then about the imitator we are agreed and what about the painter I would like to know whether he may be thought to imitate that which originally exists in nature or only the creations of artists the latter as they are or as they appear you
have still to determine this what do you mean I mean that you may look at a bed from different points of view obliquely or directly or from any other point of view and the bed will appear different but there is no difference in reality and the same of all things yes he said the difference is only apparent now let me ask you another question which is the art of painting designed to be an imitation of things as they are or as they appear of appearance or of reality of appearance then the imitator I said is
a long way off the truth and can do all things because he lightly touches on a small part of them and that part an image for example a painter will paint a cobbler Carpenter or any other artist though he knows nothing of their arts and if he is a good artist he may deceive children or simple persons when he shows them his picture of a carpenter from a distance and they will fancy that they are looking at a real Carpenter certainly and whenever anyone informs us that he has found a man who knows all the
Arts and all things else that anybody knows and every single thing with a higher degree of accuracy than any other man whoever tells us this I think that we can only imagine him to be a simple creature who is likely to have been deceived by some Wizard or actor whom he met and whom he thought all knowing because he himself was unable to analyze the nature of knowledge and ignorance and imitation most true and so when we hear persons saying that the tragedians and Homer who is at their head know all the Arts and all
things human virtue as well as Vice and divine things too for that the good poet cannot compose well unless he knows his subject and that he who has not this knowledge can never be a poet we ought to consider whether here also there may not be a similar illusion perhaps they may have come across imitators and been deceived by them they may not have remembered when they saw their works that these were but imitations Thrice removed from the truth and could easily be made without any knowledge of the truth because they are appearances only and
not realities or after all they may be in the right and Poets do really know the things about which they seem to the many to speak so well the question he said should by all means be considered now do you suppose that if a person were able to make the original as well as the image he would seriously devote himself to the image making branch would he allow imitation to be the ruling principle of his life as if he had nothing higher in him I should say not the real artist who knew what he was
imitating would be interested in realities and not in imitations and would desire to leave as Memorials of himself Works many and fair and instead of being the author of encomiums he would prefer to be the theme of them yes he said that would be to him a source of much greater honor and profit then I said we must put a question to Homer not about medicine or any of the Arts to which his poems only incidentally refer we are not going to ask him or any other poet whether he has cured patience like asclepius or
left behind him a school of medicine such as the asclepiads were or whether he only talks about medicine and other Arts at second hand but we have a right to know respecting military tactics politics education which are the chiefest and noblest subjects of his poems and we may fairly ask him about them friend Homer then we say to him if you are only in the second removed from truth in what you say a virtue and not in the third not in Image Maker or imitator and if you are able to discern what Pursuits make men
better or worse in private or public life tell us what state was ever better governed by your help the good order of lesser demon is due to like kyrgus and many other cities Great and Small have been similarly benefited by others but who says that you have been a good legislator to them and have done them any good Italy and Sicily boast of karandus and there is Solon who is renowned among us but what city has anything to say about you is there any city which he might name I think not said glaucon not even
the homerids themselves pretend that he was a legislator well but is there any war on record which was carried on successfully by him or aided by his councils when he was alive there is not or is there any invention of his applicable to the Arts or to human life such as thalis the Malaysian or anacarsus the scythian and other ingenious men have conceived which is attributed to him there's absolutely nothing of the kind but if Homer never did any public service was he privately a guide or teacher of any had he and his lifetime friends
who love to associate with him and who handed down to posterity and homeric way of life such as was established by Pythagoras who was so greatly beloved for his wisdom and whose followers are to this day quite celebrated for the order which was named after him nothing of the kind is recorded of him for surely Socrates creopolis the companion of Homer that child of Flesh whose name always makes us laugh might be more justly ridiculed for his stupidity if as is said Homer was greatly neglected by him and others in his own day when he
was alive yes I replied that is the tradition but can you imagine glaucon that if Homer had really been able to educate and improve mankind if he had possessed knowledge and not been a mere imitator can you imagine I say that he would not have had many followers and been honored and loved by them protagoras of abdera and prodicus of CEOs and a host of others have only to whisper to their contemporaries you will never be able to manage either your own house or your own State until you appoint us to be your Ministers of
Education and this ingenious device of theirs has such an effect in making men love them that their companions all but carry them about on their shoulders and is it conceivable that the contemporaries of Homer or again of Hessian would have allowed either of them to go about as rhapsodists if they had really been able to make mankind virtuous would they not have been as unwilling to part with them as with gold and have compelled them to stay at home with them or if the master would not stay then the disciples would have followed him about
everywhere until they had got education enough yes Socrates that I think is quite true then must we not infer that all these poetical individuals beginning with Homer are only imitators they copy images of virtue and the like but the truth they never reach the poet is like a painter who as we have already observed will make a likeness of a cobbler though he understands nothing of cobbling and his picture is good enough for those who know no more than he does and judge only by colors and figures quite so in like manner the poet with
his words and phrases may be said to lay on the colors of the several Arts himself understanding their nature only enough to imitate them and other people who are as ignorant as he is and judge only from his words imagine that if he speaks of cobbling or of military tactics or of anything else in meter and Harmony and Rhythm he speaks very well such is the sweet influence which Melody and Rhythm by Nature have and I think that you must have observed again and again what a poor appearance the tales of poets make when stripped
of the colors which music puts upon them and recited in simple prose yes he said they are like faces which were never really beautiful but only blooming and now the bloom of Youth has passed away from them exactly here is another point the imitator or maker of the image knows nothing of true existence he knows appearances only am I not right yes then let us have a clear understanding and not be satisfied with half an explanation proceed of the painter we say that he will paint Reigns and he will paint a bit yes and the
worker in leather and Brass will make them certainly but does the painter know the right form of the bit and Reigns nay hardly even the workers in brass and leather who make them only the horsemen who knows how to use them he knows their right form most true and may we not say the same of all things what that there are three Arts which are concerned with all things one which uses another which makes a third which imitates them yes and the Excellence or beauty or truth of every structure animate or inanimate and of every
action of man is relative to the use for which nature or the artist has intended them true then the user of them must have the greatest experience of them and he must indicate to the maker the good or bad qualities which develop themselves in use for example the flute player will tell the flute maker which of his flutes is satisfactory to the performer he will tell him how he ought to make them and the other will attend to his instructions of course the one knows and therefore speaks with authority about the goodness and Badness of
flutes while the other confiding in him will do what he is told by him true the instrument is the same but about the Excellence or Badness of it the maker will only attain to a correct belief and this he will gain from him who knows by talking to him and being compelled to hear what he has to say whereas the user will have knowledge true but will the imitator have either will he know from use whether or no his drawing is correct or beautiful or will he have right opinion from being compelled to associate with
another who knows and gives him instructions about what he should draw neither then he will no more have true opinion than he will have knowledge about the goodness or Badness of his imitations I suppose not the imitative artist will be in a brilliant state of intelligence about his own Creations nay very much the reverse and still he will go on imitating without knowing what makes a thing good or bad and may be expected therefore to imitate only that which appears to be good to the ignorant multitude just so thus far then we are pretty well
agreed that the imitator has no knowledge worth mentioning of what he imitates imitation is only a kind of play or Sport and the tragic poets whether they write in iambic or in heroic verse are imitators in the highest degree very true and now tell me I conjure you has not imitation been shown by us to be concerned with that which is Thrice removed from the truth certainly and what is the faculty in man to which imitation is addressed what do you mean I will explain the body which is large when seen near appears small when
seen at a distance true and the same object appears straight when looked at out of the water and crooked when in the water and the concave becomes convex owing to the illusion about colors to which the site is liable thus every sort of confusion is revealed within us and this is that weakness of the human mind on which the art of conjuring and of deceiving by light and Shadow and other ingenious devices imposes having an effect upon us like magic true and the Arts of measuring and numbering and weighing come to the rescue of the
human understanding there is the beauty of them and the apparent greater or less or more or heavier no longer have the Mastery over us but give way before calculation and measure and weight most true and this surely must be the work of the calculating and rational principle in the soul to be sure and when this principle measures and certifies that some things are equal or that some are greater or less than others there occurs an apparent contradiction true but were we not saying that such a contradiction is impossible the same faculty cannot have contrary opinions
at the same time about the same thing very true then that part of the Soul which has an opinion contrary to measure is not the same with that which has an opinion in accordance with measure true and the better part of the soul is likely to be that which trusts to measure and calculation certainly and that which is opposed to them is one of the inferior principles of the Soul no doubt this was the conclusion at which I was seeking to arrive when I said that painting or drawing and imitation in general when doing their
own proper work are far removed from truth and the Companions and friends and Associates of a principle within us which is equally removed from reason and that they have no true or healthy aim exactly the imitative art is an inferior who marries an inferior and has inferior Offspring very true and is this confined to the site only or does it extend to the hearing also relating in fact to what we term poetry probably the same would be true of poetry do not rely I said on a probability derived from the analogy of painting but let
us examine further and see whether the faculty with which poetical imitation is concerned is good or bad by all means we may State the question thus imitation imitates the actions of men whether voluntary or involuntary on which as they imagine a good or bad result has ensued and they Rejoice or sorrow accordingly is there anything more no there is nothing else but in all this variety of circumstances is the man at Unity with himself or rather as in the instance of sight there was confusion and opposition in his opinions about the same things so here
also is they're not strife and inconsistency in his life though I need hardly raise the question again for I remember that all this has been already admitted and the Soul has been acknowledged by us to be full of these and ten thousand similar oppositions occurring at the same moment and we were right he said yes I said thus far we were right but there was an Omission which must now be supplied what was the Omission were we not saying that a good man who has The Misfortune to lose his son or anything else which is
most dear to him will bear the loss with more Equanimity than another yes but will he have no sorrow or shall we say that although he cannot help Sorrowing he will moderate his sorrow the latter he said is the truer statement tell me will he be more likely to struggle and hold out against his sorrow when he is seen by his equals or when he is alone it will make a great difference whether he is seen or not when he is by himself he will not mind saying or doing many things which he would be
ashamed of anyone hearing or seeing him do true there is a principle of Law and reason in him which bids him resist as well as a feeling of his Misfortune which is forcing him to indulge his sorrow true but when a man is drawn in two opposite directions to and from the same object this as we affirm necessarily implies two distinct principles in him certainly one of them is ready to follow the guidance of the law how do you mean the law would say that to be patient under suffering is best and that we should
not give way to impatience as there is no knowing whether such things are good or evil and nothing is gained by impatience also because no human thing is of serious importance and grief stands in the way of that which at the moment is most required what is most required he asked that we should take counsel about what has happened and when the dice have been thrown order our Affairs in the way which reason deems best not like children who have had a fall keeping hold of the parts struck and wasting time and setting up a
howl but always accustoming the soul forth with to apply a remedy raising up that which is sickly and Fallen banishing The Cry of Sorrow by The Healing Art yes he said that is the true way of meeting the attacks of Fortune yes I said and the higher principle is ready to follow this suggestion of Reason clearly and the other principle which inclines us to recollection of our troubles and to lamentation and can never have enough of them we may call irrational useless and cowardly indeed we may and does not the latter I mean the rebellious
principle furnish a great variety of materials for imitation whereas the wise and calm temperament being always nearly Equitable is not easy to imitate or to appreciate when imitated especially at a public Festival when a promiscuous crowd is assembled in a theater for the feeling represented is one to which they are strangers certainly then the imitative poet who aims at being popular is Not By Nature Made nor is his art intended to please or to affect the rational principle in the soul but he will prefer the passionate and fitful temper which is easily imitated clearly and
now we may fairly take him and place him by the side of the painter for he is like him in two ways first inasmuch as his Creations have an inferior degree of Truth in this I say he is like him and he is also like him in being concerned with an inferior part of the Soul and therefore we shall be right in refusing to admit him into a well-ordered state because he awakens and nourishes and strengthens the feelings and impairs the reason as in a city when the evil are permitted to have authority and the
good are put out of the way so in the soul of man as we maintain the imitative poet implants an evil Constitution for he indulges the irrational nature which has no discernment of greater and less but thinks the same thing at one time great and at another small he is a manufacturer of images and is very far removed from the truth exactly but we have not yet brought forward the heaviest count in our accusation the power which poetry has of harming even the good and there are very few who are not harmed is surely an
awful thing yes certainly if the effect is what you say hear and judge the best of us as I conceive when we listen to a passage of Homer or one of the tragedians in which he represents some pitiful hero who is drawing out his sorrows in a long oration or weeping and smiting his breast the best of us you know Delight in giving way to sympathy and are in raptures at the Excellence of the poet who stirs our feel things most yes of course I know but when any sorrow of our own happens to us
then you may observe that we pride ourselves on the opposite quality we would feign be quiet and patient this is the manly part and the other which delighted Us in the recitation is now deemed to be the part of a woman very true he said now can we be right in praising and admiring another who is doing that which any one of us would abominate and be ashamed of in his own person no he said that is certainly not reasonable nay I said quite reasonable from one point of view what point of view if you
consider I said that when in Misfortune we feel a natural hunger and desire to relieve our sorrow by weeping and lamentation and that this feeling which is kept under control in our own calamities is satisfied and delighted by The Poets the better nature in each of us not having been sufficiently trained by reason or habit allows the sympathetic element to break loose because the sorrow is in others and The Spectator fancies that there can be no disgrace to himself in praising and pitying anyone who comes telling him what a good man he is and making
a fuss about his troubles he thinks that the pleasure is again and why should he be super serious and lose this and the poem too few persons ever reflect as I should imagine that from the evil of other men something of evil is communicated to themselves and so the feeling of Sorrow which has gathered strength at the sight of the misfortunes of others is with difficulty repressed in our own how very true and does not the same hold also of the ridiculous there are jests which you would be ashamed to make yourself and yet on
the comic stage or indeed in private when you hear them you are greatly amused by them and are not at all disgusted at their unseemliness the case of pity is repeated there is a principle in human nature which is disposed to raise a laugh and this which you once restrained by reason because you were afraid of being thought a buffoon is now let out again and having stimulated The risible Faculty at the theater you are betrayed unconsciously to yourself into playing the comic poet at home quite true he said and the same may be said
of lust and anger and all the other affections of desire and pain and pleasure measure which are held to be Inseparable from every action in all of them poetry feeds and Waters the passions instead of drying them up she lets them rule although they ought to be controlled if mankind are ever to increase in happiness and virtue I cannot deny it therefore glocken I said whenever you meet with any of the eulogists of Homer declaring that he has been the educator of helles and that he is profitable for education and for the ordering of human
things and that you should take him up again and again and get to know him and regulate your whole life according to him we may love and honor those who say these things they are excellent people as far as their lights extend and we are ready to acknowledge that Homer is the greatest of poets and first of tragedy writers but we must remain firm in our conviction that hymns to the gods and Praises of famous men are the only poetry which ought to be admitted into our state for if you go beyond this and allow
the honeyed Muse to enter either in Epic or lyric verse not law and the reason of mankind which by Common consent have ever been deemed best Pleasure and Pain will be the rulers in our state that is most true he said and now since we have reverted to the subject of poetry let this our defense serve to show the reasonableness of our former judgment in sending away out of our state an art having the Tendencies which we have described for reason constrained us but that she may not impute to us any harshness or want of
politeness let us tell her that there is an ancient quarrel between philosophy and poetry of which there are many proofs such as the saying of the yelping Hound howling at her Lord or of one Mighty in the vain talk of Fools and the mob of sages circumventing Zeus and the subtle thinkers who are Beggars after all and there are innumerable other signs of ancient enmity between them notwithstanding this let us assure our sweet friend and the sister Arts of imitation that if she will only prove her title to exist in a well-ordered state we shall
be delighted to receive her we are very conscious of her charms but we may not on that account betray the truth I dare say glocken that you are as much Charmed by her as I am especially when she appears in Homer yes indeed I am greatly Charmed shall I propose then that she be allowed to return from Exile but upon this condition only that she make a defense of herself in lyrical or some other meter certainly and we may further Grant to those of her Defenders who are lovers of poetry and yet not poets the
permission to speak in prose on her behalf let them show not only that she is pleasant but also useful to States and to human life and we will listen in a kindly spirit for if this can be proved we shall surely be the gainers I mean if there is a use in poetry as well as a delight certainly he said we shall be the gainers if her defense fails then my dear friend like other persons who are enamored of something but put a restraint upon themselves when they think their desires are opposed to their interests
so too must we after the manner of lovers give her up though not without a struggle we too are inspired by that love of poetry which the education of noble States has implanted in us and therefore we would have her appear at her best and truest but so long as she is unable to make good her defense this argument of ours shall be a charm to us which we will repeat to ourselves while we listen to our strains that we may not fall away into the childish love of her which captivates the many at all
events we are well aware that poetry beings such as we have described is not to be regarded seriously as attaining to the truth and he who listens to her fearing for the safety of the city which is within him should be on his guard against her seductions and make our words his law yes he said I quite agree with you yes I said my dear glocken for great is the issue at stake greater than appears whether a man is to be good or bad and what will anyone be profited if under the influence of Honor
or money or power I or under the excitement of poetry he neglect Justice and virtue yes he said I've been convinced by the argument as I believe that anyone else would have been and yet no mention has been made of the greatest prizes and rewards which await virtue what are there any greater still if there are they must be of an inconceivable greatness why I said what was ever great in a short time the whole period of three score years and ten is surely but a little thing in comparison with eternity say rather nothing he
replied and should an immortal being seriously think of this little space rather than of the whole of the whole certainly but why do you ask are you not aware I said that the soul of man is Immortal and imperishable he looked at me in astonishment and said no by heaven and are you really prepared to maintain this yes I said I ought to be and you too there is no difficulty in proving it I see a great difficulty but I should like to hear you State this argument of which you make so light listen then
I am attending there is a thing which you call good and another which you call evil yes he replied would you agree with me in thinking that the corrupting and destroying element is the evil and the saving and improving element the good yes and you admit that everything has a good and also an evil as ophthalmia is the evil of the eyes and disease of the whole body as mildew is of corn and rot of Timber or rust of copper and iron in everything or in almost everything there is an inherent evil and disease yes
he said and anything which is infected by any of these evils is made evil and at last holy dissolves and dies true the vice and evil which is inherent in each is the destruction of each and if this does not destroy them there is nothing else that will for good certainly will not destroy them nor again that which is neither good nor evil certainly not if then we find any nature which having this inherent corruption cannot be dissolved or destroyed we may be certain that of such a nature there is no destruction that may be
assumed well I said and is there no evil which corrupts the soul yes he said there are all the evils which we were just now passing in review unrighteousness in Temperance cowardice ignorance but does any of these dissolve or destroy her and here do not let us fall into the error of supposing that the unjust and foolish man when he is detected perishes through his own Injustice which is an evil of the Soul take the analogy of the body the evil of the body is a disease which wastes and reduces and annihilates the body and
all the things of which we were just now speaking come to Annihilation through their own corruption attaching to them and inhering in them and so destroying them is not this true yes consider the soul in like manner does the Injustice or other evil which exists in the soul waste and consume her do they by attaching to the soul and inhering in her at last bring her to death and so separate her from the body certainly not and yet I said it is unreasonable to suppose that anything can perish from without through affection of external evil
which could not be destroyed from within by a Corruption of its own it is he replied consider I said glaucom that even the Badness of food whether staleness decomposition or any other bad quality when confined to the actual food is not supposed to destroy the body although if the Badness of food communicates corruption to the body then we should say that the body has been destroyed by a Corruption of itself which is disease brought on by this but that the body being one thing can be destroyed by the Badness of food which is another and
which does not engender any natural infection this we shall absolutely deny very true and on the same principle unless some bodily evil can produce an evil of the Soul we must not suppose that the soul which is one thing can be dissolved by any merely external evil which belongs to another yes he said there is reason in that either then let us refute this conclusion or while it remains unrefuted let us never say that fever or any other disease or the knife put to the throat or even the cutting up of the whole body into
the minutest pieces can destroy the soul until she herself is proved to become more Unholy or unrighteous in consequence of these things being done to the body but that the soul or anything else if not destroyed by an internal evil can be destroyed by an external one is not to be affirmed By Any Man and surely he replied no one will ever prove that the souls of men become more unjust in consequence of death but if someone who would rather not admit the immortality of the Soul boldly denies this and says that the dying to
really become more evil and unrighteous then if the speaker is right I suppose that Injustice like disease must be assumed to be fatal to the unjust and that those who take this disorder die by the natural inherent power of Destruction which evil has and which kills them sooner or later but in quite another way from that in which at present the wicked received death at the hands of others as the penalty of their deeds nay he said in that case Injustice if fatal to the unjust will not be so very terrible to him for he
will be delivered from evil but I rather suspect the opposite to be the truth and that Injustice which if it have the power will murder others keeps the murderer alive I am well awake too so far removed is her Dwelling Place from being a house of death true I said if the inherent natural Vice or evil of the soul is unable to kill or destroy her hardly will that which is appointed to be the destruction of some other body destroy a soul or anything else except that of which it was appointed to be the destruction
yes that can hardly be but the soul which cannot be destroyed by an evil whether inherent or external must exist forever and if existing forever must be immortal certainly that is the conclusion I said and if a true conclusion then the souls must always be the same for if none be destroyed they will not diminish a number neither will they increase for the increase of the immortal Natures must come from something mortal and all things would thus end in immortality very true but this we cannot believe reason will not allow us any more than we
can believe the soul in her truest nature to be full of variety and difference and dissimilarity what do you mean he said the soul I said being as is now proven Immortal must be the fairest of compositions and cannot be compounded of many elements certainly not her immortality is demonstrated by the previous argument and there are many other proofs but to see her as she really is not as we now behold her marred by communion with the body and other miseries you must contemplate her with the eye of reason in her original Purity and then
her beauty will be revealed and Justice and Injustice and all the things which we have described will be manifested more clearly thus far we have spoken the truth concerning her as she appears at present but we must remember also that we have seen her only in a condition which may be compared to that of the sea god Glaucus whose original image can hardly be discerned because his natural members are broken off and crushed and damaged by the waves in all sorts of ways and incrustations have grown over them of seaweed and shells and Stones so
that he is more like some monster than he is to his own natural form and the Soul which we behold is in a similar condition disfigured by ten thousand ills but not their glockon not there must we look where then at her love of wisdom let us see whom she affects and what society and Converse she seeks in virtue of her near Kindred with the immortal and eternal and divine also how different she would become if holy following this Superior principle and borne by a Divine impulse out of the ocean in which she now is
and disengage from the stones and shells and things of Earth and rock which in Wild variety spring up around her because she feeds upon Earth and is overgrown by the good things of this life as they are termed then you would see her as she is and know whether she have one shape only or many or what her nature is of her affections and of the forms which she takes in this present life I think that we have now said enough true he replied and thus I said we have fulfilled the conditions of the argument
we have not introduced the rewards and glories of Justice which as you were saying are to be found in Homer and hesiod but Justice in her own Nature has been shown to be best for the soul in her own nature let a man do what is just whether he have the ring of gaijes or not and even if in addition to the Ring of gaijes he put on the helmet of Hades very true and now glocken there will be no harm in further enumerating how many and how great are the rewards which Justice and the
other virtues procure to the soul from Gods and Men both in life and after death certainly not he said will you repay me then what you borrowed in the argument what did I borrow the assumption that the just man should appear unjust and the unjust just for you were of opinion that even if the true state of the case could not possibly escape the eyes of Gods and Men still this admission ought to be made for the sake of the argument in order that pure Justice might be weighed against pure Injustice do you remember I
should be much to blame if I had forgotten then as the causes decided I demand on behalf of justice that the estimation in which she is held by Gods and Men and which we acknowledge to be her do should now be restored to her by us since she has been shown to confer reality and not to deceive those who truly possess her let what has been taken from her be given back that so she may win that palm of appearance which is hers also and which she gives to her own the demand he said is
just in the first place I said and this is the first thing which you will have to give back the nature both of the just and unjust is truly known to the Gods granted and if they are both known to them one must be the friend and the other the enemy of the Gods as we admitted from the beginning true and the friend of the Gods may be supposed to receive from them all things at their best accepting only such evil as is the necessary consequence of former sins certainly then this must be our notion
of the just man that even when he is in poverty or sickness or any other seeming Misfortune all things will in the end work together for good to him in life and death for the gods have a care of anyone Whose desire is to become just and to be like God as far as man can attain the Divine likeness by the pursuit of virtue yes he said if he is like God he will surely not be neglected by him and of the unjust may not the opposite be supposed certainly such then are the palms of
Victory which the gods give the just that is my conviction and what do they receive of men look at things as they really are and you will see that the clever unjust are in the case of Runners who run well from the starting place to the goal but not back again from the goal they go off at a great Pace but in the end only look foolish slinking away with their ears draggling on their shoulders and without a crown but the true Runner comes to the finish and receives the prize and is crowned and this
is the way with the just he who endures to the end of every action and occasion of his entire life has a good report and Carries off the prize which men have to bestow true and now you must allow me to repeat of the just the blessings which you were attributing to the fortunate unjust I shall say of them what you were saying of the others that as they grow older they become rulers in their own City if they care to be they marry whom they like and give in marriage to whom they will all
that you said of the others I now say of these and on the other hand of the unjust I say that the greater number even though they escape in their youth are found out at last and look foolish at the end of their course and when they come to be old and miserable are flouted alike by stranger and citizen they are beaten and then come those things unfit for ears polite as you truly term them they will be racked and have their eyes burned out as you were saying and you may suppose that I have
repeated the remainder of your tale of Horrors but will you let me assume without reciting them that these things are true certainly he said what you say is true these then are the prizes and rewards and Gifts which are bestowed upon the just by Gods and Men in this present life in addition to the other good things which justice of herself provides yes he said and they are fair and Lasting and yet I said all these are as nothing either in number or greatness in comparison with those other recompenses which await both just and unjust
after death and you ought to hear them and then both just and unjust will have received from us a full payment of the debt which the argument owes to them speak he said there are few things which I would more gladly hear well I said I will tell you a tale not one of the tales which Odysseus tells to the hero alsinus yet this too is a tale of a hero Heir the son of armenius a pamphilian by birth he was slain in battle and ten days afterwards when the bodies of the Dead were taken
up already in a state of corruption his body was found unaffected by Decay and carried away home to be buried and on the 12th day as he was lying on the funeral pile he returned to life and told them what he had seen in the other world he said that when his soul left the body he went on a journey with a great company and that they came to a mysterious place at which there were two openings in the Earth they were near together and over against them were two other openings in the heaven above
in the intermediate space there were judges seated who commanded the just after they had given judgment on them and had bound their sentences in front of them to ascend by the Heavenly way on the right hand and in like manner the unjust were bitten by them to descend by the lower way on the left hand these also bore the symbols of their deeds but fastened on their backs he drew near and they told him that he was to be the messenger who would carry the report of the other world to men and they bait him
here and see all that was to be heard and seen in that place then he beheld and saw on one side the souls departing at either opening of heaven and earth when sentence had been given on them and at the two other openings other Souls some ascending out of the earth Dusty and worn with travel some descending Out of Heaven clean and bright and arriving ever and on they seem to have come from a long journey and they went forth with gladness into the meadow where they encamped us at a festival and those who knew
one another in embraced and conversed the Souls which came from Earth curiously inquiring about the things above and the Souls which came from Heaven about the things beneath and they told one another of what had happened by the way those From Below weeping and Sorrowing at the remembrance of the things which they had endured and seen in their Journey beneath the earth now the journey lasted a thousand years while those from above were describing Heavenly Delights and visions of inconceivable Beauty the story glocken would take too long to tell but the sum was this he
said that for every wrong which they had done to anyone they suffered tenfold or once in a hundred years such being reckoned to be the length of man's life and the penalty being thus paid ten times in a thousand years if for example there were any who had been the cause of many deaths or had betrayed or enslaved cities or armies or been guilty of any other evil Behavior for each and all of their offenses they received punishment ten times over and the rewards of beneficence and Justice and Holiness were in the same proportion I
need hardly repeat what he said concerning young children dying almost as soon as they were born of piety and impiety to gods and parents and of murderers there were retributions other and greater far which he described he mentioned that he was present when one of the spirits asked another where is rdas the Great now this rdas lived a thousand years before the time of air he had been the Tyrant of some city of pamphilia and had murdered his aged father and his elder brother and was said to have committed many other abominable crimes the answer
of the other Spirit was he comes not hither and will never come and this said he was one of the Dreadful sights which we ourselves witnessed we were at the mouth of the cavern and having completed all our experiences were about to reassend whenever sudden rdas appeared and several others most of whom were tyrants and there were also besides the tyrants private individuals who had been great criminals they were just as they fancied about to return into the upper world but the mouth instead of admitting them gave a roar whenever any of these incurable Sinners
or someone who had not been sufficiently punished tried to ascend and then wild men of fiery aspect who were standing by and heard the sound seized and carried them off and artieus and others they bound head and foot in hand and threw them down and flayed them with scourges and dragged them along the road at the side carting them on Thorns like wool and declaring to the passers by what were their crimes and that they were being taken away to be cast into hell and of all the many Terrors which they had endured he said
that there was none like the terror which each of them felt at that moment lest they should hear the voice and when there was silence one by one they ascended with exceeding Joy these said ER were the penalties and retributions and there were blessings as great now when the spirits which were in the meadow had tarried seven days on the eighth they were obliged to proceed on their journey and on the fourth day after he said that they came to a place where they could see from above a line of light straight as a column
extending right through the whole heaven and through the Earth in color resembling the rainbow only brighter and purer another Day's Journey brought them to the place and there in the midst of the light they saw the ends of the chains of Heaven let down from above for this light is the belt of heaven and holds together the circle of the universe like the undergirders of a trirem from these ends is extended the spindle of necessity on which all the revolutions turn the shaft and hook of this spindle are made of steel and the Whirl is
made partly of Steel and also partly of other materials now the world is informed like the world used on earth and the description of it implied that there is one large Hollow World which is quite scooped out and into this is fitted another lesser one and another and another and four others making eight in all like vessels which fit into one another the worlds show their edges on the upper side and on their Lower Side altogether form one continuous world this is pierced by the spindle which is driven home through the center of the eighth
the first and outermost whirl has the rim broadest and the Seven inner worlds are narrower in the following proportions the sixth is next to the first in size the fourth next to the sixth then comes the eighth the seventh is fifth the fifth is sixth the third is seventh last and eighth comes the second the largest or fixed stars is spangled and the seventh or sun is brightest the eighth or Moon colored by the reflected light of the seventh the second and fifth Saturn and Mercury are in color like one another and yellower than the
preceding the third Venus has the whitest light the fourth Mars is reddish the sixth Jupiter is in whiteness second now the whole spindle has the same motion but as the whole revolves in One Direction the seven inner circles move slowly in the other and of these the swiftest is the eighth next in swiftness are the seventh Sixth and fifth which move together third in swiftness appeared to move according to the law of this reversed motion the fourth the third appeared fourth and the second fifth the spindle turns on the knees of necessity and on the
upper surface of each circle is a siren who goes round with them hemming a single tone or note the eight together form one Harmony and round about at equal intervals there is another band three in number each sitting upon her throne these are the fates Daughters of necessity who are clothed in white robes and have chaplets upon their heads lakesis and clotho and atropos who accompany with their voices the harmony of the sirens lakis's singing of the past clotho of the present atropos of the future clotho from time to time assisting with a touch of
her right hand the revolution of the Outer Circle of the Whirl or spindle and atropos with her left hand touching and guiding the inner ones and lakis is laying hold of either in turn first with one hand and then with the other when er and the spirits arrived their Duty was to go at once to lochisis but first of all there came a prophet who arranged them in order then he took from the knees of lakis's lots and samples of lives and having mounted a high Pulpit spoke as follows hear the word of laquisis the
daughter of necessity mortal Souls Behold a new cycle of life and mortality your Genius will not be allotted to you but you will choose your Genius and let him who draws the first lot have the first choice and the life which he chooses shall be his destiny virtue is free and as a man honors or dishonors her he will have more or less of her the responsibility is with the chooser God is Justified when The Interpreter had thus spoken he scattered Lots indifferently among them all and each of them took up the lot which fell
near him all but ER himself he was not allowed and each as he took his lot perceived the number which he had obtained then The Interpreter placed on the ground before them the samples of lives and there were many more lives than the souls present and they were of All Sorts there were lives of every animal and of man in every condition and there were tyrannies among them some lasting out the tyrant's life others which broke off in the middle and came to an end in poverty and Exile and begary and there were lives of
famous men some who were famous for their form and Beauty as well as for their strength and success in games or again for their birth and the qualities of their ancestors and some who were the reverse of famous for the opposite qualities and of women likewise there was not however any definite character in them because the soul when choosing a new life must of necessity become different but there was every other quality and they all mingled with one another and also with elements of wealth and poverty and disease and health and there were mean States
also and Here My Dear glaucon is the Supreme Peril of our human State and therefore the utmost care should be taken Let each one of us leave every other kind of knowledge and seek and follow one thing only if pair Adventure he may be able to learn and may find someone who will make him able to learn and discern between good and evil and so to choose always and everywhere the better life as he has opportunity he should consider the bearing of all these things which have been mentioned severally and collectively upon virtue he should
know what the effect of beauty is when combined with poverty or wealth in a particular soul and what are the good and evil consequences of noble and humble birth of private and public station of strength and weakness of cleverness and dullness and of all the natural and acquired gifts of the soul and the operation of them when conjoined he will then look at the nature of the soul and from the consideration of all these qualities he will be able to determine which is the better and which is the worse and so he will choose giving
the name of evil to the life which will make his soul more unjust and good to the life which will make his soul more just all else he will disregard for we have seen and know that this is the best choice both in life and after death a man must take with him into the world below an adamantine faith in truth and right that there too he may be undazzled by the desire of wealth or the other allurements of evil lest coming upon tyrannies and similar villainies he do irremediable wrongs to others and suffer yet
worse himself but let him know how to choose the mean and avoid the extremes on either side as far as possible not only in this life but in all that which is to come for this is the way of happiness and according to the report of the messenger from the other world this was what the prophet said at the time even for the last Comer if he chooses wisely and will live diligently there is appointed a happy and not undesirable existence let not him who chooses first be careless and let not the last Despair and
when he had spoken he who had the first choice came forward and in a moment chose the greatest tyranny his mind having been darkened by Folly and sensuality he had not thought out the whole matter before he chose and did not at first sight perceive that he was fated among other evils to devour his own children but when he had time to reflect and saw what was in the lot he began to beat his breast and lament over his choice forgetting the proclamation of the prophet for instead of throwing the blame of his Misfortune on
himself he accused chance and the gods and everything rather than himself now he was one of those who came from heaven and in a former life had dwelt in a well-ordered state but his virtue was a matter of habit only and he had no philosophy and it was true of others who were similarly overtaken that the greater number of them came from heaven and therefore they had never been schooled by trial whereas the pilgrims Who Came From Earth having themselves suffered and seen others suffer were not in a hurry to choose and owing to this
inexperience of theirs and also because the lot was a chance many of the souls exchanged a good Destiny for an evil or an evil for a good for if a man had always on his arrival in this world dedicated himself from the first to sound philosophy and had been moderately fortunate in the number of the lot he might as the messenger reported be happy here and also his journey to another life and return to this instead of being rough and underground would be smooth and Heavenly most curious he said was the spectacle sad and laughable
and strange for the choice of the souls was in most cases based on their experience of a previous life there he saw the soul which had once been Orpheus choosing the life of a swan out of enmity to the race of women hating to be born of a woman because they had been his murderers he beheld also the soul of thamiris choosing the life of a nightingale Birds on the other hand like the swan and other musicians wanting to be men the soul which obtained the 20th lot chose the life of a lion and this
was the soul of Ajax the son of telemon who would not be a man remembering the Injustice which was done him in the judgment about the arm arms the next was Agamemnon who took the life of an eagle because like Ajax he hated Human Nature by reason of his sufferings about the middle came the lot of Atalanta she seeing the great Fame of an athlete was unable to resist the temptation and after her there followed the soul of ipius the son of panopias passing into the nature of a woman cunning in the Arts and Far
Away among the last who chose the soul of the jester thur cities was putting on the form of a monkey there came also the soul of Odysseus having yet to make a choice and his lot happened to be the last of them all now the recollection of former toils had disenchanted him of ambition and he went about for a considerable time in search of the life of a private man who had no cares he had some difficulty in finding this which was lying about and had been neglected by everybody else and when he saw it
he said that he would have done the same had his lot been first instead of last and that he was delighted to have it and not only did men pass into animals but I must also mention that there were animals tame and wild who changed into one another and into corresponding human Natures the good into the gentle and the evil into the Savage in all sorts of combinations all the souls had now chosen their lives and they went in the order of their choice to lochisis who sent with them the genius whom they had severally
chosen to be the guardian of their lives and the fulfiller of the choice this genius has led the souls first to cloth though and Drew them within the revolution of the spindle impelled by her hand thus ratifying the destiny of each and then when they were fastened to this carried them to atropos who spun the threads and made them irreversible once without turning round they passed beneath the Throne of necessity and when they had all passed they marched on in a scorching heat to the plane of forgetfulness which was a Barren waste destitute of trees
and Verger and then towards evening they encamped by the river of unmindfulness whose water no vessel can hold of this they were all obliged to drink a certain quantity and those who were not saved by wisdom drank more than was necessary and each one as he drank forgot all things now after they had gone to rest about the middle of the night there was a thunderstorm and earthquake and then in an instant they were driven upwards in all manner of ways to their birth like stars shooting he himself was hindered from drinking the water but
in what Manner or by what means he returned to the body he could not say only in the morning awaking suddenly he found himself lying on the pyre and thus glaucon the tale has been saved and has not perished and will save us if we are obedient to the word spoken and we shall pass safely over the river of forgetfulness and our soul will not be defiled wherefore my counsel is that we hold fast ever to the Heavenly way and follow after Justice and virtue always considering that the soul is Immortal and able to endure
every sort of good and every sort of evil thus shall We Live dear to one another and to the gods both while remaining here and when like conquerors in the games who go round to gather gifts we receive our reward and it shall be well with us both in this life and in the pilgrimage of a thousand years which we have been describing
Copyright © 2025. Made with ♥ in London by YTScribe.com